Selected quad for the lemma: death_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
death_n body_n flesh_n life_n 6,515 5 4.6902 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A28525 Forty questions of the soul concerning its original, essence, substance, nature or quality and property, what it is from eternity to eternity : framed by a lover of the great mysteries, Doctor Balthasar Walter, and answered in the year 1620 / by Jacob Behme, called Teutonicus Philosophus ; Englished by John Sparrow ...; Viertzig Fragen von der Seele. English Böhme, Jakob, 1575-1624.; Sparrow, John, 1615-1665? 1665 (1665) Wing B3407; ESTC R14533 160,272 442

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

mystery_n which_o with_o the_o magia_n viz._n with_o the_o desire_n introduce_v itself_o into_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n where_o then_o the_o strong_a loud-sounding_a life_n and_o strength_n be_v understand_v in_o the_o entrance_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o first_o three_o form_n viz._n the_o astringent_a bitter_a and_o anguish_n as_o the_o word_n wrath._n wrath_n stand_v in_o the_o space_n under_o the_o hand_n line_n number_v 18._o signify_v that_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n do_v not_o touch_v the_o angle_n or_o trinity_n point_v of_o the_o number_n three_o but_o be_v generate_v or_o bear_v in_o the_o desire_n craft_n numb_a 19_o 187._o under_o the_o word_n omnipotence_n number_v 19_o stand_v suttlety_n craft_n signify_v the_o essence_n out_o of_o the_o looking-glass_n of_o the_o mystery_n which_o craft_n or_o suttlety_n in_o the_o second_o principle_n be_v change_v into_o a_o right_n or_o rectify_a understanding_n and_o here_o in_o the_o magic_a fire_n it_o be_v only_a craft_n or_o cunning_a suttlety_n for_o it_o be_v acute_a or_o point_a and_o sharp_a and_o a_o cause_n of_o the_o understanding_n devil_n numb_a 20._o 188._o over_o against_o it_o stand_v devil_n number_v 20._o in_o the_o space_n ward_n of_o the_o dark_a world_n signify_v the_o evilness_n malignity_n or_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n in_o that_o he_o be_v go_v away_o from_o the_o angle_n or_o point_n of_o the_o number_n three_o and_o have_v set_v or_o put_v his_o will_n into_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n craft_n or_o suttlety_n in_o will_v therewith_o to_o rule_v or_o lord_n it_o over_o god_n meekness_n and_o himself_o to_o use_v the_o strength_n and_o might_n or_o potency_n of_o the_o fire_n and_o of_o the_o fierce-wrath_n devil_n art_n numb_a 21_o 22._o 189._o under_o the_o word_n craft_n stand_v devil_n art_n number_v 21_o 22._o devil_n stand_v without_o the_o globe_n circle_n of_o nature_n and_o art_n stand_v within_o the_o globe_n circle_n of_o nature_n signify_v that_o the_o devil_n be_v create_v as_o well_o out_o of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o line_n or_o arm_v stroak_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o the_o eternal_a nature_n as_o the_o other_o angel_n but_o he_o have_v frame_v or_o create_v to_o himself_o his_o art_n number_v 22._o in_o the_o magic_n seek_v of_o nature_n in_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o dark_a world_n whereas_o yet_o he_o shall_v have_v get_v frame_v or_o create_v it_o in_o god_n heart_n and_o power_n or_o virtue_n and_o that_o be_v fall_n his_o cause_n of_o his_o fall_n and_o of_o his_o envy_n or_o hatred_n and_o malice_n will_n numb_a 23._o 190._o above_o the_o cross_n line_n number_v 23._o stand_v will_n signify_v that_o the_o devil_n have_v have_v swing_v himself_o aloft_o above_o the_o divine_a line_n upon_o or_o in_o which_o he_o be_v create_v as_o a_o proud_a or_o haughty_a stately_a spirit_n that_o will_v himself_o have_v be_v lord_n and_o have_v govern_v in_o own_o self_n art_n and_o wit._n darkness_n numb_a 24._o 191._o as_o now_o at_o present_a the_o pride_n or_o state_n and_o haughtiness_n and_o cunning_a subtle_a policy_n and_o prudence_n of_o man_n do_v which_o swinge_v itself_o also_o thus_o from_o the_o line_n of_o god_n up_o into_o own_o self_n wherein_o it_o can_v reach_v or_o attain_v the_o divine_a power_n or_o virtue_n and_o light_n within_o but_o fall_v in_o itself_o into_o the_o dark_a anguish_a magic_a fire_n as_o above_o the_o word_n will_n be_v mark_v number_n 24._o first_o into_o darkness_n for_o reason_n lose_v the_o divine_a understanding_n and_o desire_n wherein_o it_o can_v take_v hold_n of_o and_o receive_v god_n substance_n and_o so_o impregnate_n itself_o with_o power_n and_o virtue_n out_o of_o or_o from_o god_n fire_n numb_a 25._o 192._o and_o then_o the_o magic_a fire_n covetousness-fire_n of_o covetousness_n kindle_v itself_o in_o that_o it_o will_v to_o have_v much_o and_o yet_o have_v not_o enough_o as_o here_o number_v 25._o anguish_n numb_a 26._o 193._o and_o when_o it_o have_v fill_v itself_o with_o covetousness_n then_o begin_v the_o magic_a fire_n in_o the_o anguish_n number_v 26._o to_o burn_v for_o that_o which_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o covetousness_n and_o lade_v the_o fire_n with_o be_v the_o magic_a fire_n wood_n or_o fuel_n wherein_o it_o burn_v and_o there_o be_v death_n generate_v or_o bear_v which_o must_v separate_v what_o the_o covetousness_n have_v lay_v in_o death_n numb_a 27._o 194._o and_o here_o be_v also_o the_o weighty_a heavy_a fall_n of_o adam_n who_o imagine_v as_o the_o devil_n do_v and_o desire_v the_o multiplicity_n of_o this_o world_n for_o his_o own_o he_o will_v be_v wise_a or_o subtle_a and_o prudent_a and_o get_v much_o wit_n or_o crafty_a ingenuity_n and_o also_o the_o earthly_a &_o hellish_a source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n in_o the_o wit_n have_v he_o remain_v upon_o the_o stroke_n or_o arm_n in_o god_n line_n than_o he_o have_v not_o become_v earthly_a for_o his_o will-spirit_n have_v dwell_v in_o god_n and_o have_v introduce_v divine_a food_n into_o the_o body_n but_o now_o he_o stand_v in_o the_o anguish_n number_v 26_o and_o must_v again_o go_v through_o the_o principle_n into_o death_n number_v 27_o where_o his_o body_n must_v in_o the_o mystery_n be_v consume_v 195._o and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o in_o this_o time_n convert_v his_o will_n into_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n as_o in_o this_o figure_n be_v to_o be_v see_v then_o be_v he_o in_o the_o mystery_n reserve_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o there_o he_o shall_v be_v try_v in_o the_o fire_n whether_o his_o will-spirit_n have_v divine_a power_n and_o virtue_n in_o it_o or_o not_o or_o whether_o he_o can_v subsist_v in_o the_o fire_n and_o there_o the_o proud_a stately_a or_o haughty_a earthly_a work_n will_v be_v burn_v away_o from_o he_o and_o the_o soul_n will_v remain_v in_o the_o dark_a magic_a will-fire_n for_o itself_o be_v also_o a_o magic_a fire_n when_o the_o divine_a light-fire_n be_v not_o in_o it_o and_o so_o now_o one_o magic_a fire_n lay_v hold_v of_o another_o out_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o remedy_n to_o help_v will_n numb_a 28._o light_n numb_a 29._o spirit_n numb_a 30._o man_n numb_a 31._o 196._o but_o that_o soul_n which_o have_v in_o this_o time_n convert_v again_o and_o have_v with_o its_o will_n give_v up_o itself_o into_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n on_o the_o line_n of_o the_o cross_n number_v 27._o that_o soul_n be_v sink_v down_o from_o its_o proud_a or_o haughty_a evil_a work_n and_o be_v as_o to_o they_o will-less_a or_o free_a from_o willing_a and_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o sprout_v forth_o with_o the_o will-spirit_n number_v 28._o through_o the_o second_o principle_n in_o the_o divine_a power_n and_o virtue_n out_o of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n where_o then_o the_o will-spirit_n viz._n the_o image_n attain_v again_o the_o divine_a light_n number_v 29._o and_o the_o image_n stand_v number_v 30._o again_o in_o the_o divine_a man_n number_v 31._o image_n numb_a 32._o god_n numb_a 33._o 197._o for_o when_o the_o will_v spirit_n enter_v into_o death_n upon_o the_o cross_n than_o it_o draw_v again_o divine_a substantiality_n viz._n christ_n flesh_n to_o itself_o and_o bring_v the_o same_o with_o itself_o into_o the_o light_n into_o the_o light_a world_n there_o the_o divine_a life_n sprout_v again_o into_o the_o holy_a body_n and_o the_o image_n stand_v free_a again_o as_o here_o number_v 32._o be_v to_o be_v see_v and_o dwell_v in_o god_n number_v 33._o and_o eat_v of_o god_n word_n or_o substance_n for_o the_o image_n be_v here_o without_o or_o beyond_o nature_n in_o the_o liberty_n but_o the_o humanity_n be_v within_o nature_n as_o be_v describe_v 198._o but_o as_o to_o those_o soul_n which_o stick_v in_o their_o proud_a or_o stately_a and_o haughty_a covetous_a work_n in_o the_o anguish_n number_v 26._o they_o stick_v indeed_o in_o the_o magic_a anguish-fire_n and_o their_o work_n be_v wood_n or_o fuel_n to_o or_o for_o the_o fire_n 199._o but_o if_o the_o will-spirit_n do_v yet_o turn_v in_o itself_o a_o little_a into_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o also_o be_v fast_o bind_v to_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n that_o soul_n hang_v as_o by_o a_o thread_n to_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o nine_o number_n numb_a 34._o 200._o this_o soul_n may_v well_o thus_o burn_v a_o while_n till_o the_o will-spirit_n can_v enter_v into_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n till_o its_o sidereal_a wood_n or_o fuel_n be_v burn_v up_o when_o the_o earthly_a body_n die_v then_o must_v the_o image_n bathe_v which_o the_o present_a too_o wise_a and_o subtle_a world_n contemn_v but_o in_o death_n do_v find_v it_o by_o woeful_a experience_n there_o must_v this_o little_a sparkle_n which_o hang_v only_o by_o a_o thread_n wind_n itself_o into_o the_o death_n
dreyfaltigkeit_fw-ge trinity_n pure_a element_n number_n 34._o 215._o the_o word_n pure_a element_n on_o the_o crosse_n upper_a line_n number_v 43._o signify_v the_o inward_a world_n out_o of_o which_o this_o outward_a with_o the_o four_o element_n be_v become_v generate_v forth_o and_o stand_v in_o the_o inward_a root_n in_o the_o substance_n thereof_o holy_a spirit_n num._n 44._o son_n num._n 45._o 216._o moreover_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v exact_o how_o the_o word_n stand_v begin_v and_o end_v for_o they_o begin_v on_o the_o outward_a circle_n circle_n at_o the_o left_a where_o above_o number_n 5._o the_o holy_a spirit_n character_n or_o letter_n v._o stand_v and_o beneath_o number_n 8._o substance_n and_o go_v through_o the_o two_o circle_n circle_n at_o the_o right_n even_o into_o the_o second_o space_n which_o signify_v the_o pure_a divine_a element_n original_a its_o indwelling_n and_o substance_n whence_o it_o originate_v viz._n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o eternal_a mystery_n in_o the_o divine_a substantiality_n viz._n in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o great_a mystery_n and_o yet_o be_v only_o manifest_a or_o reveal_v in_o the_o second_o principle_n viz._n in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n as_o above_o one_o the_o circle_n circle_n at_o the_o right_n be_v to_o be_v see_v number_v 44._o and_o 45._o father_n numb_a 46._o holy_a spirit_n of_o divine_a wisdom_n and_o understanding_n numb_a 47._o 217._o the_o pure_a element_n be_v the_o work_n in_o the_o right_n true_a heaven_n and_o shut_v itself_o in_o and_o out_o with_o or_o by_o the_o cross_n it_o be_v the_o spring_a or_o flow_v &_o move_v in_o the_o fire_n and_o light-heaven_n from_o or_o by_o with_o the_o divine_a substantiality_n understand_v substance_n and_o not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v a_o life_n for_o it_o reach_v not_o into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n number_v 46._o where_o beneath_o on_o the_o circle_n stand_v divine_a wit_n or_o understanding_n for_o the_o element_n give_v or_o afford_v not_o divine_a wit_n but_o the_o holy_a spirit_n number_v 47._o give_v divine_a apprehension_n knowledge_n or_o skill_n and_o wit_n or_o understanding_n 218._o the_o element_n be_v a_o substance_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o deity_n as_o the_o life_n in_o the_o flesh_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o the_o tincture_n be_v high_a and_o give_v the_o ens_fw-la of_o the_o spirit_n wherein_o the_o light-fire_n be_v understand_v humanity_n flesh_n numb_a 48._o 219._o under_o the_o word_n pure_a element_n stand_v at_o number_n 27._o on_o the_o stroke_n of_o the_o upper_a line_n of_o the_o cross_n death_n and_o the_o word_n begin_v lay_v hold_n on_o the_o left_a circle_n circle_n and_o go_v through_o the_o cross_n through_o the_o first_o right_a circle_n circle_n there_o observe_v both_o the_o outward_a circle_n at_o the_o left_a and_o at_o the_o right_n above_z and_o beneath_o and_o then_o thou_o will_v soon_o find_v what_o the_o right_a or_o authority_n of_o death_n be_v and_o how_o it_o be_v the_o die_a source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n in_o the_o magic_a fire_n and_o hold_v the_o substantiality_n captive_a in_o itself_o as_o at_o the_o leave_v beneath_o at_o number_n 8._o &_o at_o the_o right_n beneath_z at_z number_n 4._o 8._o be_v to_o be_v see_v and_o then_o above_o on_o the_o same_o circle_n at_o number_n 44._o and_o at_o the_o leave_v above_o at_o number_n 5._o there_o a_o man_n see_v how_o the_o spiritual_a life_n go_v and_o sprout_v forth_o through_o the_o death_n and_o possess_v the_o high_a whole_a circle_n for_o all_o whatsoever_o will_v to_o reach_v or_o attain_v the_o divine_a life_n must_v go_v through_o the_o die_a magic_a fire_n and_o stand_v or_o subsist_v therein_o as_o the_o heart_n on_o the_o cross_n must_v and_o do_v stand_v or_o 14._o subsist_v in_o the_o fire_n of_o god_n 220._o further_o it_o be_v to_o be_v know_v that_o we_o in_o adam_n have_v turn_v ourselves_o away_o from_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v with_o the_o desire_n of_o lust_n or_o pleasure_n go_v with_o our_o will_n above_o the_o cross_n at_o number_n 23._o into_o a_o own_o self_n rule_n or_o government_n and_o now_o death_n have_v captivate_v we_o in_o itself_o therefore_o we_o must_v now_o sink_v down_o out_o of_o death_n on_o the_o cross_n at_o the_o line_n of_o christ_n again_o into_o the_o heart_n and_o become_v new_o bear_v or_o regenerate_v in_o the_o heart_n else_o death_n hold_v we_o captive_a in_o itself_o for_o now_o death_n stand_v on_o the_o cross-line_n but_o at_o the_o judgement_n it_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o dark_a world_n for_o our_o will_n must_v now_o enter_v through_o death_n on_o the_o cross_n into_o rest_n but_o the_o outward_a cross_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o then_o 15._o death_n be_v a_o spectacle_n or_o scorn_n and_o derision_n 221._o three_o it_o signify_v that_o the_o life_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n bare_a *_o death_n as_o a_o show_n or_o spectacle_n of_o triumph_n on_o the_o cross_n when_o death_n become_v break_v on_o the_o cross_n in_o the_o die_a of_o christ_n where_o the_o life_n sprout_v through_o death_n and_o the_o heart_n give_v up_o or_o yield_v itself_o into_o the_o middle_n viz._n into_o the_o centre_n as_o 54._o victorious_a lord_n or_o conqueror_n of_o death_n paradise_n numb_a 49._o 222._o under_o the_o heart_n at_o number_n 49._o stand_v paradise_n the_o word_n begin_v at_o the_o leave_v on_o the_o outward_a circle_n where_o above_o at_o number_n 5._o be_v mark_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o the_o profundity_n or_o unsearchableness_n of_o eternity_n viz._n v._o and_o it_o go_v through_o the_o cross_n at_o the_o right_n through_o all_o the_o three_o circle_n circle_n even_o into_o the_o liberty_n this_o signify_v the_o constitution_n or_o existence_n of_o paradise_n it_o originate_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eternity_n and_o prout_v through_o the_o outward_a and_o also_o hrough_a the_o light_a world_n hide_v in_o the_o outward_a world_n and_o manifest_v or_o reveal_v in_o the_o second_o principle_n in_o the_o light_a world_n as_o therefore_o the_o world_n penetrate_v through_o all_o the_o three_o circle_n show_v the_o humane_a body_n original_a divine_a substantiality_n numb_a 50._o 223._o for_o in_o or_o at_o this_o place_n out_o of_o this_o substance_n adam_n body_n understand_v the_o outward_a body_n be_v create_v according_a to_o the_o three_o principle_n and_o the_o inward_a body_n understand_v the_o image_n body_n out_o of_o the_o divine_a substantiality_n as_o at_o the_o right_n near_a paradise_n be_v mark_v with_o number_n 50._o christ_n flesh_n numb_a 51_o 52._o 224._o that_o very_o divine_a substance_n understand_v note_n substance_n not_o spirit_n be_v include_v in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o therein_o be_v the_o heavenly_a tincture_n for_o god_n word_n that_o become_v man_n bring_v this_o substance_n into_o mary_n into_o she_o in_o death_n enclose_a substantiality_n viz._n into_o the_o image_n body_n and_o thereby_o god_n and_o man_n become_v one_o person_n 225._o for_o this_o flesh_n be_v christ_n flesh_n according_a to_o the_o heavenly_a part_n therefore_o beyond_o substantiality_n stand_v christ_n flesh_n number_v 51_o 52._o christ_n bear_v such_o flesh_n in_o the_o inward_a man_n as_o adam_n have_v before_o his_o eve_n be_v when_o he_o stand_v in_o the_o divine_a image_n in_o purity_n therefore_o can_v no_o man_n go_v into_o paradise_n unless_o he_o attain_v that_o flesh_n again_o that_o adam_n have_v before_o the_o fall_n and_o christ_n attain_v in_o the_o become_a man_n or_o incarnation_n therefore_o must_v we_o all_o become_v bear_v out_o of_o the_o heart_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o 27._o put_v on_o christ_n mystery_n numb_a 53._o 226._o under_o paradise_n number_v 53._o stand_v mysterium_fw-la mystery_n and_o the_o word_n begin_v at_o the_o leave_v in_o the_o second_o side_n circle_n where_o above_o on_o the_o same_o side_n circle_n number_v 4._o the_o character_n or_o letter_n o_o stand_v and_o beneath_o principle_n and_o fire_n number_v 7._o and_o go_v to_o the_o right_n through_o the_o cross_n through_o the_o first_o side_n circle_n at_o the_o right_n this_o signify_v right_o and_o exact_o man_n creation_n according_a to_o the_o body_n 227._o for_o the_o body_n be_v a_o mystery_n take_v out_o of_o the_o inward_a and_o outward_a world_n from_o above_o and_o from_o beneath_o understand_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n matrix_fw-la this_o be_v the_o earth_n matrix_fw-la out_o of_o this_o mystery_n be_v it_o create_v and_o a_o man_n see_v how_o it_o be_v create_v out_o of_o the_o inward_a and_o outward_a substance_n viz._n out_o of_o the_o dark_a and_o light_a world_n and_o be_v mix_v with_o evil_a viz._n with_o fierce-wrath_n and_o also_o with_o good_n wonder_n numb_a 54._o angel_n numb_a 55._o spirit_n numb_a
l._n 7._o for_o †_o r._n *_o v_o 190._o l._n last_o r._n own_o self_n be_v and_o wit_n v._n 216._o l._n 10._o marg._n r._n half_a circle_n l._n 12._o f._n one_o r._n on_o v_o 222._o l._n 17._o f._n world_n r._n word_n v_o 253._o l._n 2_o r._n *_o one_o margin_n *_o l._n 5._o f._n turn_v r._n turn_v v_o 254._o l._n 1._o r._n or_o the_o total_a l._n 19_o marg._n l._n 7._o for_o part_n r._n parrot_n v._n 256._o l._n 7._o r._n sulphur_n l._n 9_o r._n magia_n v_o 257._o l._n 4._o f._n magic_a r._n magic_a v_o 260._o l._n 4._o f._n bear_v r._n bow_v v_o 278._o l._n 5._o f._n right_a r._n light_n v._n 287._o l._n 5._o r._n christ_n flesh_n v_o 327._o l._n 8._o r._n god_n put_v out_o the_o inward_a q._n 4._o v._n 9_o l._n 2._o f._n breathe_v r._n breathe_v q._n 6._o v._n 10._o l._n 8_o f._n native_a r._n nature_n q_o 6._o v._n 14._o l_o 4._o f_o conant_v r_o concent_v v_o 15._o l._n 4._o marg._n f_o stolyen_n r_o stoltzen_n q._n 7._o v._n 9_o l._n 5._o marg_n f_o wondelt_n r_o wandeit_n q._n 11._o v._n 5._o l_o 4._o f_z carnal_a r_o council_n 16._o f_o prime_n r_o prince_n q._n 11._o v._n 6._o l_o 4._o r_o mymick_a q._n 12_o five_o 27._o l_o 2._o r_o shall_v l_o 3_o r._n to_o fill_v q_o 12_o five_o 32_o l_o 9_o f_z have_v r_o hear_v v_o 40_o l_o 6_o f_o charity_n r_o clarity_n q_o 14_o five_o 13_o l_o 4_o r_o self-desire_n q_o 17_o five_o 19_o l_o 2_o f_z yet_o r_o let_v v_o 20_o l_o 2_o f_o the_o r_o thou_o l_o 6_o f_z they_o r_o thou_o v_o 11_o l_o 4_o r_o to_o and_o depend_v v_o 25_o l_o 3_o r_o the_o harvest_n q_o 18_o five_o 5_o l_o 1_o f_o they_o r_o then_o l_o 6_o f_z one_o r_o and._n five_o 11_o l_o 4_o r_o receive_v q_o 21_o five_o 3_o l_o 1_o f_o seek_v r_o seeth_n v_o 23_o l_o 5_o r_o take_v in_o q_o 23_o five_o 7_o l_o 4_o r_o thereby_o v_o 10_o l_o 11_o f_z cease_v r_o seize_v q_o 24_o five_o 17_o l_o 4_o r_o chest_n we_o say_v q_o 26_o five_o 19_o l_o 7_o f_o their_o r_o they_o v_o 22_o l_o 2_o r_o act_v q_o 30_o five_o 17_o r_o of_o the_o world_n v_o 39_o l_o 3_o f_z break_a r_o breathe_v v_o 50_o l_o 8_o r_o such_o short_a word_n or_o answer_n r_o 56_o l_o 7._o f_z be_v r_o here_o q_o 32_o five_o 15_o l_o 3_o f_o megia_n r_o magna_n v_o 20_o f_o keep_v r_o know_n q_o 35_o five_o 1_o l_o 5_o r_o herein_o v_o 6_o l_o 3_o r_o distinguish_v v_o 37_o l_o 2_o r_o self_n up_o q_o 36_o five_o 18_o l_o 2_o marg._n f_o was●er_n r_o wasser_n v_o 26_o l_o 3_o f_z and_o r_o as_o q_o 37_o five_o 5_o l_o 4_o f_z wink_a r_o work_v q_o 40_o five_o 10_o l_o 5_o r_o lises-essence_n appendix_n five_o 6_o l_o 5_o r_o it_o be_v v_o 29_o l_o 3_o r_o image_v v_o 31_o l_o 9_o r_o or_o be_v v_o 33_o l_o 5_o r_o image_v v_o 34_o l_o 1_o f_o men_n r_o man._n the_o table_n of_o the_o forty_o question_n 1._o whence_o the_o soul_n exist_v at_o the_o beginning_n 2._o what_o the_o soul_n essence_n substance_n nature_n and_o property_n be_v 3._o how_o the_o soul_n be_v create_v to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n 4._o what_o the_o soul_n breathe_v in_o be_v and_o when_o it_o be_v effect_v 5._o how_o the_o soul_n be_v proper_o form_v and_o fashion_v 6._o what_o the_o soul_n power_n or_o ability_n be_v 7._o whether_o the_o soul_n be_v corporeal_a or_o not_o corporeal_a 8._o in_o what_o manner_n the_o soul_n come_v into_o man_n or_o into_o the_o body_n 9_o how_o the_o soul_n do_v unite_v itself_o with_o the_o body_n 10._o whether_o the_o soul_n be_v exit_fw-la traduce_v and_o propagate_v humane_o and_o corporeal_o or_o every_o time_n new_o create_v and_o breathe_v in_o from_o god_n 11._o how_o and_o in_o what_o place_n the_o soul_n be_v seat_v in_o man._n 12._o how_o the_o enlighten_v of_o the_o soul_n be_v 13._o how_o the_o soul_n feed_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 14._o whether_o such_o a_o new_a soul_n be_v without_o sin_n 15._o how_o sin_n come_v into_o the_o soul_n see_v it_o be_v god_n work_n and_o creature_n 16._o how_o the_o soul_n be_v keep_v in_o such_o union_n or_o connexion_n both_o in_o the_o adamical_a and_o regenerate_v body_n 17._o whence_o and_o wherefore_o the_o opposition_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n be_v 18._o how_o the_o soul_n depart_v from_o the_o body_n in_o the_o death_n of_o a_o man_n 19_o whether_o the_o soul_n be_v mortal_a or_o immortal_a 20._o how_o the_o soul_n return_v to_o god_n again_o 21._o whither_o the_o soul_n go_v when_o it_o part_v from_o the_o body_n be_v it_o happy_a or_o unhappy_a 22._o what_o every_o soul_n do_v whether_o it_o enjoy_v or_o rejoice_v itself_o till_o the_o day_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n 23._o whether_o the_o wicked_a soul_n without_o difference_n in_o so_o long_a a_o time_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n feel_v any_o ease_n or_o refreshment_n 24._o whether_o man_n wish_n benefit_v they_o or_o sensible_o come_v where_o they_o be_v 25._o what_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o the_o bosom_n of_o abraham_n be_v 26._o whether_o the_o soul_n depart_v take_v care_n about_o man_n their_o friend_n child_n and_o good_n and_o know_v see_v like_a or_o dislike_v their_o undertake_n 27._o whether_o they_o know_v &_o understand_v this_o or_o that_o art_n or_o business_n whereof_o in_o the_o body_n they_o have_v good_a skill_n 28._o whether_o also_o they_o can_v certain_o know_v and_o get_v any_o more_o skill_n in_o divine_a angelical_a earthly_a and_o diabolical_a thing_n than_o they_o have_v in_o the_o body_n 29._o what_o their_o rest_n awaken_n and_o clarification_n be_v 30._o what_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o live_n and_o dead_v resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o soul_n be_v 31._o what_o kind_n of_o new_a glorify_a body_n they_o will_v have_v 32._o what_o furthermore_o in_o the_o other_o life_n their_o form_n condition_n joy_n and_o glory_n be_v 33._o what_o kind_n of_o matter_n our_o body_n will_v have_v in_o the_o other_o life_n 34._o of_o the_o miserable_a and_o horrible_a condition_n of_o the_o damn_a soul_n 35._o what_o the_o enochian_a life_n be_v and_o how_o long_o it_o will_v continue_v 36._o what_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o messiah_n or_o christ_n be_v 37._o what_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o be_v obedient_a which_o he_o commend_v into_o his_o father_n hand_n 38._o of_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v be_v do_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 39_o what_o and_o where_o paradise_n be_v with_o its_o inhabitant_n 40._o whether_o it_o be_v mutable_a and_o what_o it_o will_v come_v to_o be_v hereafter_o the_o preface_n of_o j._n b._n to_o dr._n belthasar_n walter_n belove_a sir_n and_o my_o good_a friend_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o sense_n reason_n to_o answer_v to_o your_o question_n for_o they_o be_v the_o great_a mystery_n which_o be_v alone_o know_v to_o god_n 2._o for_o as_o daniel_n faith_n to_o king_n nabuchadnezzar_n 30._o that_o which_o the_o king_n ask_v and_o desire_v of_o the_o learned_a chaldean_n astrologian_n and_o wise_a man_n 16._o be_v not_o in_o their_o power_n only_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n can_v reveal_v or_o manifest_v the_o hide_a thing_n it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o reason_n to_o answer_v the_o king_n but_o that_o the_o king_n may_v perceive_v the_o thought_n of_o his_o heart_n god_n have_v reveal_v it_o not_o that_o my_o reason_n be_v great_a than_o of_o all_o they_o that_o live_v 3._o so_o say_v i_o also_o to_o you_o you_o shall_v be_v answer_v not_o that_o my_o reason_n be_v great_a than_o of_o all_o they_o that_o live_v but_o that_o you_o may_v perceive_v and_o obtain_v the_o thought_n of_o your_o heart_n your_o earnest_n seek_v and_o desire_v it_o be_v give_v to_o i_o to_o answer_v you_o 4._o and_o you_o shall_v not_o in_o outward-man_n such_o a_o way_n so_o eager_o seek_v after_o such_o thing_n for_o it_o stand_v in_o no_o outward_a reason_n but_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n nothing_o be_v impossible_a and_o see_v we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o in_o christ_n bear_v again_o in_o god_n sure_o the_o son_n must_v needs_o see_v very_o well_o what_o the_o father_n do_v in_o his_o house_n and_o also_o learn_v his_o skill_n and_o work_v 5._o and_o see_v we_o ourselves_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n shall_v we_o not_o so_o much_o as_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o if_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o meddle_v with_o such_o mystery_n as_o antichrist_n in_o folly_n forbid_v we_o for_o none_o apprehend_v any_o thing_n of_o god_n mystery_n unless_o it_o be_v give_v to_o he_o
spirit_n of_o this_o world_n 19_o by_o which_o then_o the_o image_n in_o the_o spirit_n become_v attere_v all_o according_a to_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o will_n which_o the_o soul_n have_v frame_v or_o contrive_v or_o bring_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o centre_n also_o out_o of_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n into_o the_o light_n viz._n according_a to_o the_o imagination_n 20._o and_o we_o give_v you_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o spirit_n can_v alter_v itself_o in_o this_o time_n of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v do_v without_o its_o knowledge_n or_o apprehension_n through_o the_o imagination_n viz._n through_o the_o seek_a lust_n or_o long_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n where_o the_o desire_v figure_v such_o a_o form_n in_o the_o soul_n will_v as_o the_o lust_n or_o long_a pleasure_n be_v to_o evil_a or_o good_n 21._o and_o we_o say_v that_o the_o pure_a soul_n be_v not_o corporeal_a but_o there_o grow_v a_o body_n in_o the_o tincture_n either_o heavenly_a or_o hellish_a and_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o palpable_a body_n according_a to_o the_o outward_a but_o a_o power-body_n god_n body_n christ_n heavenly_a body_n heavenly_a flesh_n which_o christ_n give_v we_o to_o eat_v in_o his_o supper_n testament_n 22._o it_o be_v a_o body_n which_o the_o turba_n can_v touch_v or_o apprehend_v it_o be_v immortal_a unfadable_a comprise_v in_o nothing_o but_o only_o in_o the_o noble_a or_o precious_a tincture_n which_o be_v without_o substance_n and_o this_o body_n be_v to_o the_o outward_a flesh_n incomprehensible_a 23._o but_o the_o outward_a spirit_n if_o the_o soul_n do_v not_o hinder_v it_o but_o let_v it_o in_o bring_v its_o imagination_n thereinto_o and_o cover_v vail_v or_o obscure_v it_o so_o that_o another_o strange_a image_n come_v to_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o tincture_n according_a to_o the_o content_n or_o condition_n of_o the_o long_a pleasure_n or_o lust_n viz._n a_o covetous_a of_o a_o wolf_n a_o envious_a of_o a_o dog_n a_o proud_a of_o a_o horse_n peacok_n or_o other_o beast_n or_o live_a creature_n also_o of_o toad_n adder_n viper_n serpent_n &_o other_o worm_n or_o creep_a thing_n which_o image_n god_n spirit_n so_o long_o as_o it_o stand_v or_o continue_v so_o do_v not_o receive_v or_o accept_v 24._o and_o therefore_o christ_n say_v you_o must_v be_v bear_v anew_o of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n if_o you_o will_v see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o god_n become_v man_n and_o bring_v the_o divine_a image_n again_o into_o the_o soul_n tincture_n be_v it_o be_v perish_v in_o adam_n so_o that_o now_o we_o must_v be_v bear_v anew_o in_o christ_n if_o we_o will_v see_v god_n 25._o and_o this_o be_v do_v through_o the_o imagination_n or_o faith_n or_o believe_v for_o believe_v be_v eat_v of_o god_n body_n and_o every_o body_n grow_v by_o eat_v 26._o and_o the_o new-birth_n be_v not_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o babel_n teach_v her_o matter_n be_v only_o a_o looking-glass_n of_o the_o right_n and_o true_a way_n into_o god_n which_o looking-glass_n must_v be_v break_v for_o moses_n his_o cover_n or_o vail_n be_v do_v away_o we_o shall_v see_v further_o with_o clear_a paradisical_a eye_n understand_v thus_o much_o you_o child_n of_o god_n the_o eight_o question_n in_o what_o manner_n the_o soul_n come_v into_o man_n or_o into_o the_o body_n 1._o this_o question_n i_o understand_v of_o the_o soul_n propagation_n for_o how_o it_o come_v into_o adam_n moses_n tell_v you_o and_o it_o be_v mention_v above_o but_o because_o you_o ask_v concern_v its_o propagation_n how_o it_o come_v into_o a_o child_n in_o the_o mother_n womb_n we_o must_v put_v on_o another_o habit_n or_o garment_n 2._o in_o our_o life_n three_o part_n it_o be_v write_v very_o exact_o and_o at_o large_a with_o many_o circumstance_n concern_v its_o propagation_n how_o adam_n be_v create_v in_o a_o image_n he_o be_v man_n and_o woman_n before_o his_o eve_n he_o have_v the_o fire_n and_o water_n tincture_n that_o be_v soul_n and_o spirit_n and_o shall_v have_v generate_v his_o like_a a_o image_n of_o himself_o out_o of_o himself_o through_o his_o imagination_n and_o own_o love_n and_o this_o he_o can_v have_v do_v without_o disrupture_n 3._o for_o as_o it_o be_v above_o mention_v that_o the_o soul_n have_v such_o might_n or_o ability_n to_o change_v the_o body_n into_o another_o form_n so_o it_o have_v also_o have_v ability_n to_o generate_v a_o branch_n out_o of_o itself_o according_a to_o its_o property_n if_o adam_n have_v stand_v out_o the_o trial_n or_o proba_n 4._o but_o be_v he_o imagine_v after_o or_o desire_v the_o omnipotence_n and_o let_v the_o spirit_n of_o this_o world_n into_o the_o soul_n into_o the_o tincture_n and_o the_o serpent_n and_o gaze_v on_o the_o earthly_a fruit_n long_v to_o eat_v of_o evil_a and_o good_a then_o also_o his_o tincture_n conceive_v such_o a_o image_n viz._n a_o monster_n which_o be_v half_o earthly_a thereinto_o also_o instant_o the_o turba_n insinuate_v itself_o and_o seek_v the_o limit_v 5._o thus_o the_o noble_a or_o precious_a image_n be_v find_v in_o the_o earthly_a where_o then_o fragility_n corruption_n and_o death_n begin_v and_o adam_n can_v not_o then_o generate_v for_o his_o omnipotency_n be_v lose_v 6._o and_o will_v indeed_o for_o ever_o have_v be_v lose_v if_o the_o heart_n of_o god_n have_v not_o sudden_o with_o the_o word_n of_o promise_n turn_v in_o itself_o into_o adam_n soul_n which_o so_o preserve_v it_o that_o so_o adam_n image_n must_v break_v and_o the_o soul_n with_o the_o heavenly_a body_n sink_v down_o through_o death_n into_o the_o new-life_n where_o its_o spirit_n become_v renew_v again_o 7._o thus_o adam_n fall_v into_o inability_n into_o sleep_n and_o the_o other_o or_o second_o creation_n begin_v for_o god_n take_v the_o water_n tincture_n as_o in_o a_o twig_n or_o branch_n out_o of_o adam_n soul_n and_o a_o 21._o rib_n out_o of_o adam_n and_o the_o 21._o half_a cross_n in_o adam_n and_o frame_v a_o woman_n out_o of_o it_o 8._o as_o you_o know_v that_o the_o woman_n have_v the_o one_o half_a cross_n in_o her_o scull_n head_n and_o the_o man_n the_o other_o for_o in_o the_o head_n in_o the_o brain_n dwell_v the_o soul_n spirit_n out_o of_o which_o god_n have_v take_v a_o branch_n viz._n a_o child_n out_o of_o adam_n soul_n spirit_n and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o woman_n that_o she_o shall_v not_o generate_v or_o bring_v forth_o devil_n 9_o and_o the_o man_n have_v the_o fire_n tincture_n viz._n the_o right_a true_a original_a of_o the_o life_n 10._o and_o therefore_o have_v the_o woman_n get_v the_o matrix_fw-la viz._n venus_n tincture_n and_o the_o man_n the_o fires-tincture_n understand_v the_o woman_n have_v the_o lights-tincture_n which_o can_v awaken_v no_o life_n the_o life_n stand_v in_o the_o fires-tincture_n 11._o but_o now_o be_v it_o can_v not_o be_v otherwise_o they_o must_v propagate_v in_o a_o beastial_a manner_n in_o two_o seed_n the_o man_n sow_v soul_n and_o the_o woman_n spirit_n and_o be_v be_v it_o be_v sow_v in_o a_o earthly_a soil_n or_o field_n conceive_v or_o hatch_v after_o the_o kind_n and_o man-of_a all_o beast_n 12._o and_o yet_o nevertheless_o all_o the_o three_o principle_n be_v in_o the_o seed_n but_o the_o inward_a be_v not_o knowable_a or_o apprehensible_a to_o the_o outward_a for_o in_o the_o seed_n there_o be_v no_o live_a soul_n but_o when_o the_o two_o tincture_n come_v together_o than_o it_o be_v whole_o in_o substance_n for_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o the_o seed_n essential_a and_o in_o the_o conception_n or_o hatch_n it_o become_v substantial_a 13._o for_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o fire_n be_v strike_v up_o by_o vulcan_n then_o be_v the_o soul_n in_o the_o substance_n whole_o perfect_a and_o present_o the_o spirit_n go_v out_o of_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o tincture_n forth_o and_o draw_v the_o outward_a dominion_n viz._n the_o star_n with_o or_o by_o the_o air._n 14._o and_o thus_o be_v a_o eternal_a child_n and_o and_o have_v also_o the_o frail_a or_o corruptible_a spirit_n with_o the_o turba_n hang_v to_o it_o which_o adam_n through_o his_o imagination_n take_v in_o 15._o and_o there_o the_o turba_n instant_o see_v the_o limit_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o this_o world_n and_o will_v enter_v into_o the_o limit_n &_o then_o be_v the_o body_n old_a enough_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o soul_n have_v its_o life_n to_o die_v also_o many_o a_o soul_n perish_v in_o the_o essence_n while_o it_o be_v a_o seed_n in_o the_o sulphur_n 16._o but_o you_o be_v to_o observe_v this_o that_o the_o man_n have_v the_o fire_n tincture_n and_o the_o woman_n the_o light_n tincture_n in_o the_o water_n viz._n venus_n tincture_n as_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o both_o their_o vehement_a imagination_n one_o towards_o another_o for_o
have_v fight_v a_o good_a fight_n here_o for_o here_o it_o be_v a_o very_a short_a time_n 25._o we_o stand_v here_o in_o the_o field_n or_o soil_n and_o grow_v let_v every_o one_o have_v a_o care_n what_o fruit_n he_o bear_v at_o the_o end_n of_o harvest_n every_o one_o work_n will_v be_v put_v into_o its_o own_o barn_n 26._o it_o be_v better_a to_o labour_v a_o little_a while_n in_o irksomeness_n and_o toil_n and_o expect_v the_o great_a reward_n wage_n and_o refreshment_n then_o to_o be_v here_o a_o little_a while_o a_o king_n and_o afterward_o to_o be_v a_o wolf_n a_o lion_n a_o dog_n a_o cat_n a_o toad_n a_o serpent_n and_o worm_n in_o shape_n figure_n 27._o o_o child_n of_o man_n consider_v it_o be_v warn_v for_o we_o speak_v precious_a thing_n out_o of_o a_o wonderful_a eye_n you_o will_v sudden_o know_v it_o by_o experience_n there_o be_v yet_o but_o a_o little_a time_n for_o the_o beginning_n have_v clear_o find_v the_o end_n and_o this_o be_v a_o bud_n little_a rose_n out_o of_o the_o beginning_n pray_v become_v see_v put_v away_o covetousness_n from_o your_o eye_n else_o you_o will_v wail_v and_o lament_v and_o none_o will_v have_v pity_n on_o you_o 8._o for_o that_o which_o any_o one_o sow_v that_o he_o will_v also_o reap_v and_o then_o what_o will_v pomp_n and_o honour_n avail_v you_o when_o it_o fall_v away_o from_o you_o 28._o you_o be_v here_o very_o potent_a and_o afterward_o very_o impotent_a 35._o you_o be_v god_n and_o yet_o yourselves_o run_v to_o the_o devil_n take_v pity_n of_o your_o life_n and_o of_o your_o fair_a heavenly_a image_n 29._o you_o be_v god_n child_n be_v not_o the_o devil_n let_v not_o the_o hypocrite_n with_o praise_n and_o flattery_n keep_v you_o back_o they_o do_v it_o for_o their_o belly_n and_o honour_n sake_n for_o money_n sake_n they_o be_v the_o minister_n or_o servant_n of_o the_o great_a babel_n 30._o search_v thyself_o ask_v thy_o conscience_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o god_n it_o will_v complain_v against_o thou_o and_o say_v drive_v the_o flatterer_n and_o hypocrite_n away_o from_o thou_o and_o seek_v the_o clear_a countenance_n of_o god_n see_v not_o by_o a_o looking-glass_n 31._o god_n be_v for_o you_o he_o be_v in_o you_o worship_v he_o come_v with_o the_o lose_a or_o prodigal_a son_n to_o he_o else_o none_o can_v take_v the_o turba_n from_o you_o when_o you_o give_v he_o good_a word_n you_o must_v only_o through_o death_n go_v into_o the_o other_o world_n whereinto_o your_o hypocrisy_n and_o flattery_n can_v enter_v else_o there_o be_v no_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o if_o you_o give_v all_o to_o the_o hypocrite_n or_o flatterer_n yet_o you_o be_v at_o one_o time_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o captivate_v in_o the_o turba_n 32._o it_o be_v not_o so_o as_o if_o one_o stand_v by_o and_o do_v take_v away_o the_o turba_n from_o you_o if_o you_o give_v he_o good_a word_n no_o no_o it_o be_v magical_a 3._o you_o must_v be_v bear_v again_o as_o christ_n say_v else_o you_o can_v attain_v god_n do_v what_o you_o will_v all_o hypocrisy_n or_o flattery_n be_v deceit_n 33._o if_o you_o will_v serve_v god_n than_o you_o must_v do_v it_o in_o the_o new_a man_n the_o earthly_a adam_n can_v do_v he_o no_o service_n which_o be_v acceptable_a to_o he_o sing_z ring_n call_v cry_v pray_v and_o what_o he_o will_v and_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v it_o be_v but_o fight_v before_o a_o looking-glass_n the_o will_n must_v be_v in_o it_o the_o heart_n must_v give_v itself_o into_o it_o else_o it_o be_v a_o conjecture_n and_o a_o fable_n or_o fiction_n of_o antichrist_n which_o fill_v the_o whole_a world_n 34._o the_o will_n be_v great_a and_o mighty_a then_o much_o cry_v it_o can_v destroy_v the_o turba_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o image_n it_o have_v might_n or_o power_n to_o be_v god_n child_n it_o can_v cast_v away_o mountain_n and_o raise_v the_o dead_a if_o it_o be_v bear_v or_o generate_v in_o god_n and_o that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n give_v it_o leave_v 35._o for_o it_o must_v converse_v in_o obedience_n and_o great_a humility_n and_o only_o cast_v its_o will_n into_o god_n will_n that_o god_n in_o it_o may_v be_v the_o will_n and_o deed_n that_o be_v the_o way_n to_o blessedness_n and_o happiness_n and_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o no_o other_o let_v the_o pope_n or_o doctor_n preach_v what_o they_o will_v to_o the_o contrary_a all_o be_v lie_v and_o a_o hypocritical_a flatter_a fight_v before_o a_o looking-glass_n the_o eighteen_o question_n how_o the_o soul_n depart_v from_o the_o body_n in_o the_o death_n of_o a_o man._n 1._o here_o we_o will_v invite_v the_o world_n for_o a_o guest_n especial_o babel_n the_o whore_n to_o try_v whether_o a_o child_n can_v be_v make_v out_o of_o she_o for_o death_n be_v a_o terrible_a guest_n he_o throw_v the_o proud_a rider_n with_o the_o horse_n to_o the_o ground_n 2._o my_o belove_a friend_n that_o be_v a_o very_a sharp_a question_n and_o need_v the_o eye_n of_o all_o the_o three_o principle_n which_o can_v see_v very_o well_o they_o must_v not_o die_v in_o death_n if_o they_o will_v enter_v in_o and_o see_v this_o it_o must_v be_v poison_n to_o death_n and_o a_o pestilence_n to_o hell_n it_o must_v take_v death_n captive_a if_o it_o will_v see_v else_o it_o get_v no_o understanding_n unless_o itself_o come_v into_o death_n than_o it_o will_v well_o feel_v what_o death_n be_v it_o will_v well_o taste_v what_o that_o be_v when_o one_o principle_n break_v viz._n one_o life_n 3._o you_o have_v perceive_v above_o that_o all_o substance_n or_o thing_n be_v magical_a one_o be_v the_o looking-glass_n of_o the_o other_o where_o in_o one_o looking-glass_n the_o desire_n of_o the_o first_o looking-glass_n become_v open_v and_o come_v into_o substance_n and_o then_o as_o in_o all_o substance_n or_o thing_n the_o turba_n be_v which_o break_v or_o destroy_v all_o to_o the_o first_o substance_n and_o that_o be_v alone_o and_o have_v no_o breaker_n or_o destroyer_n 4._o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o it_o can_v be_v break_v or_o destroy_v it_o stand_v in_o itself_o and_o out_o of_o itself_o and_o go_v whither_o it_o will_v and_o then_o it_o be_v every_o where_o in_o no_o place_n for_o it_o be_v in_o the_o abyss_n where_o there_o be_v no_o place_n of_o rest_n it_o must_v only_o rest_v in_o itself_o 5._o they_o see_v all_o substance_n or_o thing_n be_v come_v or_o proceed_v out_o of_o one_o therefore_o be_v the_o begin_v also_o in_o the_o last_o substance_n or_o thing_n for_o the_o last_o be_v again_o turn_v back_o into_o the_o first_o and_o seek_v the_o first_o and_o find_v it_o in_o itself_o and_o when_o it_o find_v the_o first_o it_o let_v all_o the_o other_o go_v and_o dwell_v in_o the_o limit_v and_o there_o it_o can_v be_v without_o source_n quality_n or_o pain_n 6._o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v give_v it_o source_n quality_n or_o pain_n it_o be_v itself_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o first_o substance_n and_o though_o it_o be_v another_o thing_n yet_o it_o be_v but_o its_o twig_n or_o branch_n and_o have_v its_o will_n and_o none_o other_o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v give_v it_o another_o will_n 7._o we_o give_v you_o to_o understand_v concern_v die_n thus_o the_o beginning_n seek_v the_o limit_v and_o when_o it_o find_v that_o it_o cast_v the_o seek_v away_o that_o be_v the_o earthly_a life_n that_o will_v be_v cast_v away_o it_o must_v break_v or_o destroy_v itself_o 8._o for_o the_o beginning_n viz._n the_o soul_n continue_v in_o the_o limit_v and_o let_v the_o body_n depart_v and_o there_o be_v no_o complaint_n about_o it_o also_o the_o soul_n desire_v it_o no_o more_o it_o must_v go_v into_o the_o limit_v viz._n into_o the_o wonder_n of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v do_v or_o wrought_v 9_o the_o soul_n spirit_n have_v no_o woe_n do_v to_o it_o when_o the_o body_n depart_v but_o woe_n be_v do_v to_o the_o fire-life_n for_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o fire_n which_o have_v generate_v the_o fire_n that_o break_v away_o but_o only_o in_o the_o substance_n 10._o the_o figure_n remain_v stand_v in_o the_o will_n for_o the_o will_n can_v break_v and_o the_o soul_n must_v continue_v in_o the_o will_n and_o take_v the_o figure_n for_o matter_n and_o burn_v in_o the_o will_n for_o the_o first_o glance_n of_o the_o fire_n go_v not_o away_o but_o its_o matter_n of_o the_o earthly_a life_n viz._n the_o phur_n will_v be_v break_v away_o from_o it_o 11._o thus_o the_o fire_n become_v impotent_a and_o pass_v into_o the_o darkness_n unless_o it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o spirit_n have_v heavenly_a substantiality_n viz._n god_n body_n than_o the_o fire_n viz._n the_o right_a or_o
although_o yet_o there_o be_v fire_n in_o the_o centre_n from_o whence_o the_o majesty_n originate_v but_o that_o will_v not_o be_v afford_v the_o devil_n they_o will_v be_v thrust_v out_o into_o the_o darkness_n 12._o where_o will_v be_v howln●g_a and_o gnash_n of_o teee_v where_o there_o be_v more_o frost_n than_o heat_n the_o three_o and_o thirty_o question_n what_o kind_n of_o matter_n our_o body_n shall_v have_v in_o the_o other_o life_n 1._o my_o belove_a friend_n this_o be_v a_o hard_a question_n which_o the_o outward_a man_n shall_v do_v well_o to_o let_v alone_o and_o not_o meddle_v with_o it_o for_o it_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o it_o 2._o you_o know_v very_o well_o that_o god_n be_v become_v man_n and_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n blood_n and_o soul_n but_o now_o say_v christ_n 13._o i_o be_o from_o above_o none_o go_v to_o heaven_n but_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v come_v from_o heaven_n and_o who_o be_v in_o heaven_n 3._o understand_v you_o that_o which_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v then_o in_o heaven_n he_o speak_v not_o only_o of_o his_o deity_n viz._n of_o the_o word_n but_o of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n of_o the_o word_n that_o become_v flesh_n that_o be_v now_o to_o be_v consider_v by_o we_o for_o in_o that_o flesh_n and_o blood_n we_o shall_v live_v eternal_o and_o must_v have_v christ_n body_n if_o we_o will_v subsist_v in_o god_n 4._o yet_o we_o know_v of_o no_o other_o body_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v but_o our_o own_o out_o of_o the_o old_a body_n as_o the_o blade_n grow_v out_o of_o the_o grain_n and_o such_o a_o body_n also_o adam_n have_v in_o the_o creation_n but_o he_o become_v captivate_v by_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n so_o that_o he_o become_v earthly_a and_o that_o be_v his_o fall_n and_o that_o cause_v god_n that_o he_o divide_v adam_n and_o frame_v a_o woman_n out_o of_o he_o as_o be_v write_v very_o large_o in_o our_o life_n three_o book_n 5._o now_o we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o adam_n be_v a_o chaste_a virgin_n before_o his_o eve_n be_v before_o his_o sleep_n and_o afterward_o become_v a_o man_n like_o a_o beast_n with_o deformity_n which_o we_o at_o this_o day_n be_v ashamed_a of_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n that_o we_o have_v beastial_a member_n for_o propagation_n 6._o yet_o now_o adam_n have_v the_o virgin_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o he_o but_o when_o he_o fall_v than_o it_o remain_v stand_v in_o its_o principle_n and_o adam_n go_v out_o from_o it_o 7._o and_o know_v that_o christ_n be_v in_o that_o very_a virgin_n in_o the_o earthly_a mary_n incarnate_a or_o become_v man_n for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n bring_v that_o with_o it_o in_o mary_n body_n or_o womb._n 8._o and_o understand_v we_o thus_o that_o christ_n be_v become_v flesh_n in_o the_o water_n of_o the_o eternal_a life_n 9_o which_o the_o whole_a deity_n fill_v and_o even_o in_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o earthly_a mary_n 9_o but_o mary_n be_v bless_v with_o the_o heavenly-virgin_n so_o that_o christ_n become_v man_n in_o a_o pure_a vessel_n and_o so_o the_o outward_a man_n hang_v to_o he_o 10._o for_o it_o be_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o he_o assume_v from_o mary_n that_o he_o must_v take_v mary_n flesh_n but_o in_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o heavenly_a virgin_n 11._o the_o tincture_n of_o the_o blood_n in_o the_o heavenly_a virgin_n be_v heavenly_a for_o a_o earthly_a have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o go_v through_o the_o anger_n of_o god_n and_o through_o death_n also_o it_o have_v not_o have_v might_n or_o ability_n to_o have_v arisen_a out_o of_o the_o grave_a 12._o the_o word_n that_o become_v flesh_n have_v the_o water_n of_o eternal_a life_n it_o be_v out_o of_o god_n majesty_n and_o yet_o also_o in_o mary_n blood_n here_o we_o refer_v you_o further_o to_o our_o three_o book_n viz._n of_o the_o threefold_a life_n there_o it_o be_v write_v of_o at_o large_a 13._o thus_o we_o intimate_v to_o you_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o body_n in_o flesh_n and_o blood_n a_o body_n as_o christ_n have_v for_o christ_n be_v with_o his_o incarnation_n or_o become_a man_n also_o bear_v in_o we_o men._n 14._o when_o we_o become_v newborn_a out_o of_o the_o spirit_n and_o water_n then_o be_v we_o in_o christ_n spirit_n new_o bear_v out_o of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n 15._o we_o put_v on_o christ_n christ_n be_v bear_v in_o the_o convert_v sinner_n and_o he_o in_o christ_n become_v god_n child_n and_o that_o very_a body_n shall_v we_o have_v in_o heaven_n 16._o not_o gross_a beastial_a flesh_n as_o we_o have_v in_o the_o old_a adam_n but_o subtle_a flesh_n and_o blood_n such_o flesh_n as_o can_v go_v through_o wood_n and_o stone_n unhurt_a by_o the_o stone_n 26._o as_o christ_n enter_v in_o to_o his_o disciple_n through_o the_o shut-door_n that_o be_v a_o body_n in_o which_o no_o turba_n or_o fragility_n be_v for_o hell_n can_v lay_v hold_n of_o it_o it_o be_v like_a and_o conformable_a to_o the_o eternity_n and_o yet_o be_v very_o true_a flesh_n and_o blood_n that_o our_o heavenly_a 1._o hand_n do_v handle_n feel_v and_o take_v hold_v of_o a_o visible_a body_n as_o here_o in_o this_o world_n 17._o we_o offer_v to_o your_o consideration_n how_o such_o a_o body_n as_o we_o here_o carry_v about_o we_o will_v be_v capable_a of_o god_n majesty_n it_o must_v needs_o therefore_o be_v such_o a_o body_n as_o be_v like_o the_o majesty_n so_o that_o the_o majesty_n can_v give_v light_a and_o shine_v out_o of_o the_o body_n out_o of_o the_o tincture_n and_o water_n of_o eternal_a life_n 18._o we_o shall_v here_o indeed_o be_v silent_a to_o reason_n but_o to_o our_o brethren_n intelligible_a enough_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o child_n a_o wolf_n will_v have_v his_o mouth_n fill_v with_o a_o piece_n of_o flesh_n that_o he_o may_v devour_v into_o his_o gut_n of_o such_o a_o one_o we_o speak_v not_o but_o of_o such_o a_o one_o as_o christ_n have_v give_v we_o in_o his_o supper_n testament_n and_o leave_v we_o at_o last_o which_o be_v 4._o that_o he_o will_v remain_v with_o we_o eternal_o we_o in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o we_o 19_o thus_o we_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v christ_n and_o god_n body_n which_o fill_v the_o heaven_n not_o that_o we_o shall_v stick_v in_o his_o creature_n but_o be_v one_o with_o another_o as_o member_n brethren_n and_o child_n it_o be_v all_o one_o life_n in_o we_o not_o mortal_a all_o out_o of_o the_o eternal_a nothing_o that_o begin_v but_o only_o the_o wonder_n our_o substantiality_n be_v come_v to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o eternal_a we_o be_v as_o god_n god_n right_a and_o true_a child_n out_o of_o his_o essence_n in_o body_n and_o soul_n the_o four_o and_o thirty_o question_n of_o the_o lamentable_a horrible_a miserable_a condition_n of_o the_o damn_a 1._o this_o be_v also_o sufficient_o mention_v above_o for_o god_n anger_n be_v their_o habitation_n in_o the_o darkness_n their_o light_n shine_v out_o of_o their_o fiery_a eye_n that_o glimmer_v out_o of_o the_o fire-flash_n else_o they_o have_v no_o light_n for_o they_o dwell_v in_o the_o outermost_a and_o fly_v out_o of_o highmindedness_n above_o the_o throne_n as_o potent_a commander_n and_o yet_o one_o otherwise_o then_o the_o other_o all_o according_a as_o his_o spirit_n be_v 2._o for_o a_o dog_n act_n in_o a_o dogish_a manner_n a_o wolf_n in_o a_o wolvish_a also_o a_o horse_n a_o fowl_n toad_n serpent_n after_o their_o manner_n but_o they_o be_v all_o fly_a and_o swift_a as_o a_o thought_n 3._o they_o have_v yet_o their_o joy_n in_o their_o abomination_n and_o that_o be_v their_o best_a joy_n that_o they_o reproach_n god_n and_o say_v that_o they_o be_v fire-spirit_n and_o god_n a_o light-spirit_n 4._o their_o boast_n be_v always_o of_o their_o strong_a fire_n may_v as_o a_o dragon_n that_o spit_v fire_n so_o also_o they_o they_o seek_v perdition_n and_o find_v abomination_n 5._o also_o fruit_n grow_v to_o they_o out_o of_o their_o principle_n all_o according_a to_o the_o abomination_n of_o their_o will_n 6._o they_o have_v a_o sport_n like_o that_o of_o fool_n that_o spit_v fire_n out_o of_o rocket_n juggle_a and_o fool_n be_v their_o pastime_n though_o indeed_o there_o be_v no_o time_n and_o also_o after_o the_o last_o judgement_n day_n no_o fear_n more_o of_o any_o other_o source_n or_o quality_n or_o torment_n than_o they_o have_v but_o their_o whole_a life_n be_v a_o continual_a fear_n a_o horror_n and_o lamentation_n every_o one_o have_v his_o work_n in_o the_o figure_n what_o he_o have_v here_o do_v and_o than_o it_o awaken_v the_o turba_n and_o ride_v in_o the_o fire_n 7._o the_o soul_n have_v no_o feel_n for_o it_o be_v without_o
can_v desire_v to_o do_v well_o and_o be_v sorry_a when_o he_o have_v be_v draw_v away_o to_o do_v evil_a by_o the_o lust_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n by_o which_o the_o devil_n tempt_v we_o to_o do_v evil_a but_o if_o we_o will_v resist_v the_o devil_n he_o will_v fly_v from_o we_o if_o we_o will_v leave_v off_o to_o do_v evil_a and_o desire_v try_v and_o learn_v to_o do_v well_o without_o doubt_n we_o shall_v be_v able_a through_o god_n that_o dwell_v in_o we_o and_o then_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o all_o thing_n and_o lead_v we_o into_o all_o truth_n by_o his_o spirit_n all_o this_o we_o shall_v full_o understand_v and_o all_o mystery_n when_o god_n shall_v manifest_v himself_o in_o we_o if_o we_o earnest_o desire_v it_o with_o all_o humility_n self-denial_n lose_v of_o our_o soul_n and_o be_v nothing_o in_o ourselves_o for_o then_o god_n will_v be_v all_o in_o all_o and_o nothing_o be_v impossible_a with_o god_n all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o have_v the_o author_n of_o this_o answer_n to_o these_o question_n concern_v the_o soul_n find_v true_a and_o have_v out_o of_o his_o inward_a mystery_n manifest_v many_o thing_n in_o this_o and_o other_o write_n of_o his_o the_o know_v whereof_o will_v be_v exceed_o useful_a to_o the_o furtherance_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o every_o soul_n which_o when_o i_o have_v read_v i_o be_v very_o much_o satisfy_v in_o my_o own_o soul_n and_o do_v desire_v that_o other_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o they_o so_o far_o as_o lie_v in_o i_o i_o have_v therefore_o take_v in_o hand_n to_o put_v this_o treatise_n into_o english_a which_o i_o choose_v to_o do_v rather_o out_o of_o the_o original_a then_o out_o of_o any_o translation_n because_o they_o many_o time_n come_v short_a of_o the_o author_n own_o meaning_n and_o because_o i_o find_v many_o error_n in_o some_o of_o they_o and_o he_o be_v so_o deep_a in_o his_o write_n that_o we_o have_v need_v to_o desire_v that_o our_o soul_n may_v be_v put_v into_o such_o a_o condition_n as_o he_o be_v in_o else_o they_o can_v be_v full_o understand_v but_o the_o same_o god_n that_o satisfy_v his_o desire_n will_v satisfy_v we_o if_o we_o cast_v ourselves_o upon_o he_o in_o our_o soul_n and_o let_v he_o do_v with_o we_o what_o he_o please_v concern_v the_o author_n i_o have_v now_o publish_v the_o brief_a translation_n of_o his_o life_n write_v in_o high-dutch_a by_o abraham_n van_n frankenberg_n who_o be_v long_o his_o acquaintance_n and_o continue_v so_o till_o his_o death_n the_o relation_n be_v as_o follow_v a_o brief_a account_n of_o the_o life_n and_o conversation_n of_o jacob_n behme_n afterward_o by_o learned_a man_n in_o germany_n call_v teutonicus_n write_a in_o high-dutch_a by_o abraham_n van_fw-mi franckenberg_n one_o very_a much_o acquaint_v with_o he_o jacob_n behme_n be_v bear_v in_o the_o year_n 1575._o at_o old_a seidenburg_n distant_a about_o two_o mile_n from_o gerlitz_n a_o city_n in_o upper_a lusatia_n high_o esteem_v by_o learned_a man_n his_o parent_n be_v jacob_n his_o father_n &_o ursula_n his_o mother_n both_o country_n people_n in_o his_o youth_n he_o keep_v cattle_n and_o at_o length_n by_o advice_n of_o friend_n be_v send_v to_o school_n where_o he_o learn_v to_o read_v and_o write_v together_o with_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n afterward_o be_v put_v to_o the_o handicraft_n trade_n of_o a_o shoemaker_n when_o he_o become_v master_n of_o his_o trade_n in_o the_o year_n 1594._o he_o marry_v a_o maid_n one_o catharine_n the_o daughter_n of_o john_n kunshman_n a_o butcher_n of_o gerlitz_n with_o who_o he_o live_v quiet_o and_o well_o for_o thirty_o year_n together_o and_o have_v four_o son_n that_o learned_a handicraft_n trade_n be_v from_o his_o youth_n incline_v to_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o very_o diligent_a in_o frequent_v to_o hear_v the_o preach_a of_o sermon_n he_o be_v at_o length_n stir_v up_o by_o that_o say_n and_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n lube_n 11._o 13._o your_o heavenly_a father_n will_v give_v the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o they_o that_o ask_v he_o for_o it_o and_o because_o of_o the_o very_a many_o controversy_n in_o religion_n about_o which_o he_o can_v not_o satisfy_v himself_o he_o be_v move_v in_o simplicity_n of_o heart_n or_o spirit_n inward_o earnest_o and_o incessant_o to_o pray_v or_o ask_v seek_v and_o knock_v that_o he_o may_v know_v or_o apprehend_v the_o truth_n whereby_o then_o according_a to_o the_o divine_a draw_v and_o will_v in_o the_o spirit_n or_o heart_n he_o be_v rapt_v into_o the_o holy_a soul_n sabbath_n wherein_o he_o continue_v seven_o whole_a day_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n in_o high_a joy_n afterward_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o himself_o and_o have_v put_v off_o the_o folly_n of_o youth_n he_o be_v drive_v by_o divine_a zeal_n vehement_o to_o reprove_v all_o scandalous_a reproachful_a and_o blasphemous_a speech_n and_o withdraw_v from_o all_o unseemly_a matter_n and_o act_n with_o earnestness_n for_o love_n to_o virtue_n by_o which_o way_n and_o life_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o course_n of_o the_o world_n he_o become_v but_o their_o scorn_n and_o derision_n during_o which_o time_n he_o mentain_v himself_o with_o the_o labour_n of_o his_o hand_n in_o the_o sweat_n of_o his_o brow_n till_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o six_o seculum_fw-la or_o age_n viz._n anno_fw-la 1600._o when_o he_o be_v a_o second_o time_n touch_v by_o the_o divine_a light_n and_o by_o a_o sudden_a glimpse_n of_o a_o pewter_n vessel_n he_o be_v introduce_v into_o the_o inward_a ground_n or_o centre_n of_o the_o hide_a nature_n he_o not_o be_v yet_o sufficient_o satisfy_v with_o this_o go_v forth_o into_o the_o open_a field_n and_o there_o perceive_v the_o wonderful_a or_o wonder-work_n of_o the_o creator_n in_o the_o signature_n shape_v figure_n and_o quality_n or_o property_n of_o all_o create_a thing_n very_o clear_o and_o plain_o lay_v open_a whereupon_o be_v fill_v with_o exceed_a joy_n keep_v silence_n praise_v god_n and_o so_o content_o satisfy_v himself_o therewith_o for_o a_o while_n but_o according_a to_o god_n holy_a counsel_n and_o determination_n who_o manage_v his_o work_n in_o secret_a about_o ten_o year_n after_o viz._n in_o the_o year_n 1610._o by_o the_o overshadow_a of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n he_o be_v a_o three_o time_n stir_v up_o and_o renew_v by_o god_n whereupon_o be_v so_o enlighten_v with_o such_o great_a grace_n bestow_v upon_o he_o he_o can_v not_o put_v it_o out_o of_o his_o mind_n nor_o strive_v against_o his_o god_n therefore_o do_v by_o small_a mean_n and_o without_o the_o help_n of_o any_o book_n but_o only_o the_o holy_a scripture_n write_v secret_o for_o himself_o these_o book_n follow_v viz._n 1._o anno_fw-la 1612._o the_o first_o book_n call_v aurora_n the_o morning_n redness_n or_o rise_v of_o the_o sun_n and_o be_v complain_v of_o to_o the_o magistrate_n of_o gerlitz_n for_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o the_o book_n be_v take_v and_o lay_v up_o in_o the_o council_n house_n with_o command_n to_o he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o idiot_n or_o layick_a shall_v from_o thenceforth_a forbear_v such_o write_n of_o book_n which_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o his_o condition_n and_o employment_n upon_o which_o he_o abstain_v for_o seven_o year_n but_o after_o that_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n stir_v up_o again_o by_o the_o move_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o be_v exhort_v to_o it_o by_o the_o entreaty_n and_o desire_n of_o some_o people_n that_o fear_v god_n he_o take_v pen_n in_o hand_n again_o and_o go_v on_o to_o write_v and_o perfect_v with_o good_a leisure_n and_o deliberation_n these_o that_o follow_v 2._o anno._n 1619._o the_o second_o book_n concern_v the_o three_o principle_n with_o a_o appendix_n concern_v the_o threefold_a life-of_a man._n 3._o anno._n 1620._o a_o book_n of_o the_o threefold_a life_n of_o man._n 4._o the_o answer_n to_o the_o forty_o question_n of_o the_o soul_n propose_v by_o dr._n balthazer_n walter_n in_o the_o first_o chapter_n whereof_o be_v contain_v a_o treatise_n of_o the_o reverse_v eye_n or_o philosophic_a globe_n with_o a_o appendix_n concern_v the_o soul_n the_o image_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o turba_n or_o destroyer_n of_o the_o image_n 5._o three_o book_n first_o 1._o of_o the_o become_a man_n or_o incarnation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n second_o 2._o of_o the_o suffer_a die_v and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n three_o 3._o of_o the_o tree_n of_o faith_n 6._o a_o book_n of_o the_o small_a six_o point_n and_o a_o book_n of_o the_o great_a six_o point_n 7._o a_o book_n of_o the_o heavenly_a and_o earthly_a mystery_n 8._o a_o book_n of_o the_o last_o time_n or_o of_o the_o 1000_o year_n sabbath_n be_v two_o epistle_n to_o paul_n keym._n 9_o anno._n 1621._o de_fw-fr signature_n rerum_fw-la of_o the_o
fill_n for_o it_o have_v nothing_o whereby_o it_o can_v defend_v itself_o but_o the_o desire_v 40._o and_o here_o originate_v the_o eternal_a enmity_n and_o opposite_a will._n the_o will_n will_v not_o to_o be_v dark_a and_o yet_o its_o desire_v make_v it_o dark_a it_o endure_v the_o stir_v ready_o for_o it_o be_v its_o manifestation_n or_o revelation_n but_o the_o in_o draw_v and_o darken_n it_o do_v not_o love_n though_o indeed_o the_o will_n become_v not_o draw_v nor_o darken_v but_o the_o desire_v in_o the_o will_n impregnate_v it_o self_n 41._o but_o now_o be_v the_o desire_v stick_v in_o the_o darkness_n therefore_o there_o be_v a_o great_a anguish_n for_o it_o become_v stir_v and_o draw_v and_o also_o darken_v and_o vex_v itself_o in_o itself_o and_o desire_v the_o liberty_n and_o draw_v so_o eager_o after_o the_o liberty_n and_o will_v to_o draw_v itself_o into_o the_o liberty_n and_o yet_o make_v itself_o only_o the_o more_o eager_a rough_a and_o hard_a and_o be_v like_o a_o horrible_a sharpness_n which_o be_v consume_v viz._n of_o the_o darkness_n 42._o for_o it_o grasp_v the_o liberty_n into_o itself_o but_o be_v so_o sharp_a that_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o liberty_n as_o a_o flash_n of_o lightning_n which_o consume_v the_o darkness_n together_o with_o the_o eagerness_n therefore_o say_v god_n 29._o i_o be_o a_o consume_a fire_n 43._o here_o understand_v how_o all_o matter_n stand_v in_o the_o right_a fire_n may_v and_o how_o the_o 12_o floar_n shall_v once_o be_v purge_v for_o that_o be_v the_o original_n of_o the_o fire_n which_o have_v alice_n may_v and_o power_n for_o it_o consume_v whatsoever_o the_o desire_n have_v make_v be_v it_o stone_n or_o earth_n for_o it_o be_v the_o sharpness_n of_o the_o eternal_a liberty_n and_o give_v or_o afford_v centrum_fw-la naturae_fw-la the_o centre_n of_o nature_n 44._o but_o that_o you_o may_v search_v yet_o deep_o know_v that_o the_o fire_n in_o itself_o original_o stand_v in_o three_o form_n viz._n first_o in_o the_o desire_v and_o then_o second_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o that_o which_o be_v attract_v viz._n in_o the_o darkness_n in_o which_o be_v substantiality_n from_o the_o attract_v and_o three_o in_o the_o anguish-source_n or_o pain_n the_o four_o form_n 45._o and_o the_o four_o form_n make_v itself_o viz._n the_o flash_n of_o lightning_n for_o the_o liberty_n cause_v that_o and_o that_o be_v the_o kindler_n of_o the_o anguish-source_n for_o the_o desire_v in_o the_o darkness_n will_v only_o to_o have_v the_o liberty_n and_o the_o liberty_n be_v a_o light_n without_o shine_v be_v therefore_o like_o a_o very_a deep_a blue_n colour_v mix_v with_o green_n so_o that_o it_o can_v be_v discern_v plain_o what_o colour_n it_o be_v of_o for_o all_o colour_n be_v in_o it_o and_o the_o desire_v in_o itself_o in_o its_o eager_a anguish_n and_o sharpness_n break_v the_o colour_n and_o make_v in_o itself_o the_o terrible_a consume_a flash_n of_o lightning_n and_o change_v it_o according_a to_o the_o anguish_n so_o that_o it_o become_v red._n 46._o yet_o the_o liberty_n in_o the_o desire_v suffer_v not_o itself_o to_o be_v bind_v or_o hold_v but_o alter_v itself_o from_o the_o red_a flash_n of_o lightning_n in_o the_o light_n into_o a_o yellow_a glance_n of_o the_o majesty_n and_o that_o be_v in_o the_o liberty_n a_o exult_a great_a joy_n 47._o for_o in_o the_o light_n the_o eye_n become_v manifest_v or_o reveal_v as_o also_o the_o substantiality_n in_o the_o will_n where_o then_o it_o become_v apprehend_v what_o light_n or_o darkness_n be_v and_o thus_o the_o eternity_n become_v apprehend_v and_o thus_o originate_v god_n holiness_n into_o wonder_n continual_o evermore_o and_o from_o eternity_n and_o have_v neither_o limit_n nor_o beginning_n for_o it_o be_v a_o eternal_a beginning_n comprise_v and_o frame_v into_o nothing_o but_o into_o the_o wonder_n which_o be_v its_o own_o substance_n wherein_o there_o be_v neither_o limit_n nor_o number_n 48._o and_o thus_o in_o the_o still_a eternity_n be_v nothing_o apprehend_v but_o the_o glance_n of_o the_o majesty_n and_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v generate_v in_o the_o will_n and_o be_v the_o government_n in_o the_o majesty_n 49._o belove_a sir_n and_o friend_n understand_v the_o sense_n aright_o we_o mean_v not_o that_o the_o birth_n or_o geniture_n take_v hold_v of_o the_o liberty_n external_o without_o itself_o but_o in_o itself_o in_o the_o centre_n it_o take_v hold_v of_o itself_o in_o itself_o and_o make_v majesty_n in_o itself_o and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o bar_v in_o but_o be_v as_o when_o out_o of_o death_n or_o nothing_o a_o life_n come_v to_o be_v that_o thus_o dwell_v only_o in_o itself_o and_o that_o be_v call_v a_o principle_n and_o that_o wherein_o it_o dwell_v be_v call_v nature_n and_o have_v seven_o spirit_n or_o form_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o our_o principle_n second_o and_o life_n three_o book_n 50._o yet_o the_o principle_n have_v but_o one_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o life_n of_o the_o principle_n and_o have_v also_o but_o one_o will_n which_o be_v the_o fill_n of_o the_o eternity_n with_o the_o glance_n of_o the_o majesty_n 51._o for_o the_o principle_n be_v the_o power_n or_o virtue_n generate_v out_o of_o the_o will_n of_o the_o eternity_n and_o the_o entrance_n or_o eternal_a beginning_n of_o the_o power_n be_v the_o power_n life_n and_o spirit_n which_o bring_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o genetrix_fw-la and_o open_v the_o original_a of_o the_o majesty_n 52._o and_o the_o whole_a eye_n which_o have_v thus_o comprise_v or_o frame_v itself_o into_o a_o looking-glass_n in_o the_o a_o and_o o_o be_v all_o it_o be_v the_o eternity_n and_o bring_v forth_o in_o itself_o in_o the_o eye_n the_o majesty_n which_o be_v the_o heart_n and_o power_n or_o virtue_n of_o the_o eye_n and_o also_o bring_v forth_o the_o spirit_n which_o in_o the_o heart_n go_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o power_n out_o of_o the_o fiery-light-flaming_a essence_n 53._o thus_o you_o understand_v the_o holy_a number_n three_o in_o one_o substance_n that_o the_o father_n be_v the_o eternity_n without_o ground_n where_o be_v nothing_o and_o yet_o there_o be_v all_o and_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o glance_n or_o lustre_n he_o see_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v all_o and_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o majesty_n he_o feel_v himself_o and_o taste_v himself_o and_o smell_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v gut_n good_a that_o be_v that_o he_o be_v gott_n god_n although_o the_o crosse_n t_o viz._n ponderosity_n weightiness_n originate_v in_o the_o centre_n 54._o and_o in_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o stir_v in_o the_o power_n and_o the_o multiplicity_n without_o ground_n and_o number_n wherein_o a_o eternal_a unsearchable_a multiplicity_n do_v exist_v and_o all_o in_o the_o power_n 55._o for_o that_o which_o have_v no_o ground_n have_v no_o number_n and_o be_v no_o close_v up_o or_o comprehension_n or_o shut_v in_o and_o that_o which_o be_v within_o itself_o be_v not_o apprehensible_a out_o of_o itself_o but_o as_o to_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v feel_v indeed_o thus_o the_o inward_a drive_v forth_o out_o of_o itself_o and_o manifest_v or_o reveal_v itself_o in_o figure_n else_o god_n will_v not_o be_v know_v or_o apprehend_v 56._o thus_o god_n be_v together_o one_o spirit_n and_o stand_v from_o eternity_n in_o three_o beginning_n and_o end_n and_o only_o in_o himself_o 27._o there_o be_v no_o place_n find_v for_o he_o and_o he_o have_v also_o nothing_o in_o himself_o that_o be_v 8._o like_a unto_o he_o also_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v seek_v or_o manifest_v any_o thing_n more_o than_o his_o spirit_n which_o always_o itself_o from_o eternity_n in_o eternity_n manifest_v itself_o 57_o he_o be_v a_o eternal_a seeker_n and_o finder_n as_o viz._n of_o himself_o in_o great_a wonder_n and_o what_o he_o find_v he_o find_v in_o the_o great_a power_n he_o be_v the_o open_n of_o the_o power_n nothing_o be_v like_a unto_o he_o and_o nothing_o find_v he_o but_o what_o incline_v or_o give_v itself_o up_o in_o he_o that_o go_v into_o he_o that_o which_o deny_v itself_o that_o it_o be_v then_o be_v god_n spirit_n therein_o all_o for_o it_o be_v a_o will_n in_o the_o eternal_a nothing_o and_o yet_o be_v in_o all_z as_o god_n spirit_n itself_o be_v 58._o and_o this_o my_o belove_a sir_n be_v the_o high_a mystery_n and_o therefore_o if_o you_o will_v find_v this_o seek_v it_o not_o in_o i_o but_o in_o yourself_o but_o not_o in_o your_o reason_n reason_n that_o must_v be_v as_o dead_a and_o your_o desirous_a will_n in_o god_n and_o so_o it_o be_v 13._o the_o will_n and_o deed_n in_o you_o and_o so_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n bring_v your_o will_n into_o itself_o and_o so_o you_o may_v well_o see_v what_o god_n be_v and_o what_o spirit_n
make_v astringent_a austere_a or_o harsh_a from_o the_o attract_v in_o the_o will_n and_o the_o attract_v be_v sting_v and_o the_o suffering_n be_v bitter_a which_o the_o will_n will_v not_o and_o thereupon_o in_o itself_o go_v forth_o from_o the_o sting_n and_o make_v a_o principle_n of_o its_o own_o in_o which_o the_o majesty_n appear_v 82._o thus_o exi_v in_o the_o bitter_a suffering_n the_o great_a anguish_n whereas_o yet_o nothing_o be_v there_o that_o suffer_v but_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o thus_o and_o it_o be_v its_o own_o life_n and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o the_o glance_n of_o the_o majesty_n will_v not_o be_v neither_o the_o one_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o other_o for_o in_o the_o darkness_n be_v the_o flash_n of_o lightning_n and_o in_o the_o liberty_n the_o light_n with_o the_o majesty_n 83._o and_o this_o now_o be_v the_o part_n that_o the_o liberty_n be_v a_o still_o nothing_o which_o liberty_n receive_v the_o light_n and_o make_v the_o darkness_n material_a whereas_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o substance_n of_o palpability_n but_o dark_a spirit_n and_o power_n a_o fill_n of_o the_o liberty_n in_o itself_o understand_v in_o the_o desire_v not_o without_o for_o without_o be_v the_o liberty_n 84._o therefore_o be_v god_n the_o most_o secret_a and_o also_o the_o most_o reveal_v and_o that_o be_v mysterium_fw-la magnum_fw-la the_o great_a mystery_n thus_o the_o abyss_n be_v also_o secret_a and_o yet_o reveal_v as_o the_o darkness_n be_v before_o our_o eye_n but_o the_o source_n or_o pain_n be_v unsearchable_a or_o unperceptible_a till_o the_o will_n immerse_v dive_v thereinto_o than_o it_o become_v feel_v and_o find_v when_o the_o will_n lose_v the_o light_n and_o herein_o lie_v the_o ground_n of_o right_a believe_a or_o true_a faith_n let_v this_o be_v tell_v you_o you_o teacher_n in_o babel_n 85._o since_o than_o there_o be_v a_o abyss_n which_o be_v call_v the_o ground_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o comprehension_n of_o the_o darkness_n where_o the_o source_n or_o pain_n be_v as_o a_o cause_n of_o the_o life_n within_o for_o the_o fierce_a wrathful_a slash_n of_o lightning_n be_v the_o awaken_n of_o the_o life_n whereas_o there_o be_v nothing_o there_o but_o in_o itself_o therefore_o it_o be_v also_o a_o desire_v and_o the_o desire_v be_v a_o seek_v and_o yet_o can_v find_v nothing_o but_o a_o looking-glass_n and_o a_o similitude_n of_o the_o dark_a fierce_a wrathful_a source_n or_o pain_n wherein_o nothing_o be_v 86._o for_o it_o be_v a_o representation_n figure_n of_o the_o earnest_n severe_a fierce_a wrathful_a flash_n of_o lightning_n and_o of_o the_o sharp_a and_o strong_a may_v which_o be_v god_n according_a to_o which_o he_o call_v himself_o 24._o a_o consume_a fire_n and_o a_o angry_a zealous_a or_o jealous_a god_n 87._o this_o looking-glass_n be_v also_o without_o ground_n without_o begin_v and_o end_n and_o yet_o have_v a_o eternal_a beginning_n and_o end_n and_o be_v the_o eternal_a only_a cause_n that_o the_o abyss_n be_v blue_a dusky_n and_o fiery_n it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o star_n and_o element_n for_o the_o firmament_n be_v the_o other_o or_o second_o looking-glass_n generate_v out_o of_o this_o 88_o since_o than_o there_o be_v in_o all_o thing_n a_o threefold_a source_n one_o whereof_o be_v the_o other_o looking-glass_n generate_a and_o cause_n nor_o thing_n except_v all_o stand_v according_a to_o the_o substance_n or_o work_v of_o the_o number_n three_o 89._o now_o see_v there_o be_v a_o looking-glass_n in_o the_o abyss_n wherein_o the_o source_n or_o quality_n behold_v itself_o therefore_o that_o also_o be_v a_o figure_n and_o image_n of_o the_o source_n or_o quality_n which_o stand_v before_o the_o source_n or_o quality_n and_o act_v or_o generate_v nothing_o but_o be_v a_o virgin_n of_o the_o source_n quality_n or_o pain_n wherein_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n of_o the_o flash_n of_o lightning_n discover_v itself_o in_o infinity_n without_o number_n and_o continual_o open_v its_o wonder_n therein_o with_o the_o bitter_a spirit_n of_o the_o stir_a essence_n which_o in_o the_o flash_n of_o lightning_n have_v its_o life_n so_o that_o it_o go_v swift_a than_o a_o thought_n 90._o though_o indeed_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o creature_n stand_v and_o move_v herein_o and_o the_o spirit_n of_o all_o live_a creature_n be_v with_o their_o root_n stand_v herein_o every_o life_n according_a to_o its_o principle_n 91._o and_o in_o this_o spirit_n of_o the_o fire-flash_n stand_v the_o great_a omnipotent_a life_n for_o it_o be_v consume_v as_o the_o flash_n of_o lightning_n consume_v the_o darkness_n and_o that_o fire_v all_o thing_n and_o yet_o continue_v a_o life_n in_o itself_o but_o it_o be_v a_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n and_o must_v have_v substantiality_n else_o it_o continue_v a_o dark_a hunger-fire_n a_o will_n of_o devour_v and_o have_v nothing_o a_o will_n to_o rage_n prick_v and_o find_v nothing_o but_o itself_o out_o of_o which_o cause_n the_o substantiality_n viz._n the_o water_n as_o also_o sulphur_n be_v generate_v and_o generate_v itself_o from_o eternity_n to_o eternity_n 92._o here_o seek_v the_o first_o root_n of_o the_o soul_n viz._n in_o the_o fire-life_n and_o the_o second_o in_o the_o light-life_n in_o the_o majesty_n and_o then_o you_o will_v find_v god_n image_n and_o similitude_n and_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o the_o deity_n lie_v therein_o 93._o since_o than_o there_o be_v such_o a_o eye_n of_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n wherein_o the_o earnest_a severe_a stern_a fire-life_n originate_v yet_o be_v not_o at_o all_o sunder_v from_o the_o fire-life_n it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o life_n and_o have_v two_o principle_n for_o it_o burn_v in_o a_o twofold_a source_n or_o quality_n one_o within_o another_o and_o be_v one_o spirit_n in_o two_o distinction_n with_o two_o will_n the_o one_o dwell_v in_o the_o fire_n the_o other_o in_o the_o light_n 94._o and_o know_v for_o certain_a assure_o that_o the_o dark_a fire-life_n be_v the_o the_o abyss_n of_o hell_n for_o it_o be_v the_o stern_a severe_a anger_n of_o god_n 95._o and_o seek_v it_o not_o so_o as_o babel_n the_o great_a city_n of_o confusion_n upon_o earth_n have_v seek_v which_o yet_o we_o blame_v for_o nothing_o else_o but_o her_o negligence_n and_o inconsiderateness_n seek_v self-honour_n and_o power_n and_o so_o have_v captivate_v herself_o in_o the_o fierce_a wrathful_a anger_n of_o god_n which_o have_v have_v she_o a_o long_a time_n under_o its_o wonder_n and_o draw_v many_o soul_n into_o its_o source_n or_o quality_n consider_v well_o of_o it_o 96._o in_o the_o life_n three_o part_n of_o our_o write_n it_o be_v large_o describe_v for_o that_o be_v somewhat_o easy_o to_o reach_v than_o this_o but_o this_o be_v the_o deep_a ground_n of_o eternity_n as_o much_o as_o a_o spirit_n can_v be_v capable_a of_o for_o more_o it_o can_v bear_v yet_o it_o may_v be_v express_v much_o more_o at_o large_a but_o not_o more_o deep_o for_o it_o be_v comprise_v in_o the_o abyss_n in_o both_o principle_n as_o indeed_o a_o soul_n originate_v in_o the_o abyss_n in_o both_o principle_n and_o in_o the_o spiritual_a will_n in_o the_o eternity_n 97._o and_o therefore_o if_o it_o be_v not_o circumspect_a the_o devil_n may_v easy_o ride_v upon_o its_o chariot_n viz._n upon_o its_o will_n but_o if_o it_o be_v circumspect_a and_o cast_v itself_o into_o the_o desire_n will_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n than_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n ride_v upon_o its_o will_n and_o it_o be_v his_o chariot_n 98._o herein_o you_o may_v clear_o discern_v heaven_n and_o hell_n angel_n and_o devil_n evil_a and_o good_a life_n and_o death_n if_o you_o but_o search_v after_o it_o as_o we_o shall_v further_o mention_v to_o you_o the_o six_o form_n of_o fire_n 99_o thus_o then_o see_v two_o principle_n stand_v in_o one_o substance_n as_o none_o with_o reason_n can_v speak_v against_o it_o for_o every_o life_n stand_v in_o poison_n and_o light_n every_o one_o in_o its_o own_o principle_n according_a as_o it_o have_v the_o source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n so_o have_v it_o also_o its_o light_n thus_o it_o may_v be_v discern_v concern_v the_o sustenance_n of_o the_o life_n what_o that_o be_v which_o sustain_v or_o preserve_v the_o life_n that_o it_o starve_v or_o famish_v not_o and_o what_o drive_v forth_o its_o source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n that_o it_o may_v subsist_v eternal_o 100_o now_o this_o also_o be_v in_o two_o distinction_n for_o the_o light-life_n have_v its_o source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n and_o drive_v forth_o and_o the_o fire-life_n also_o its_o source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n and_o drive_v forth_o each_o in_o itself_o but_o the_o fire-life_n be_v a_o cause_n of_o the_o light-life_n and_o the_o light-life_n be_v a_o lord_n of_o the_o fire-life_n and_o herein_o lie_v the_o mysterium_fw-la magnum_fw-la the_o
fountain_n quality_n of_o the_o essence_n out_o of_o the_o will._n 135._o now_o you_o see_v also_o well_o that_o fire_n must_v have_v somewhat_o to_o consume_v else_o it_o be_v a_o darkness_n and_o though_o it_o devour_v itself_o viz._n it_o be_v strong_a or_o stern_a attraction_n yet_o that_o very_a fire_n be_v only_o a_o source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n in_o the_o darkness_n whereby_o we_o understand_v the_o abyss_n of_o the_o anger_n which_o in_o god_n be_v not_o reveal_v or_o manifest_v but_o only_o as_o a_o cause_n of_o the_o life_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 136._o you_o see_v this_o that_o every_o fire_n must_v have_v substance_n if_o it_o must_v burn_v understand_v this_o thus_o the_o fire_n afford_v air_n the_o air_n water_n and_o it_o draw_v the_o air_n strong_o again_o into_o itself_o with_o the_o water_n whence_o the_o fire_n source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n of_o heat_n become_v mitigate_v or_o meekn_v so_o that_o it_o shine_v 137._o for_o without_o oil_n water_n no_o fire_n shine_v where_o in_o a_o thing_n the_o water_n be_v not_o to_o be_v attain_v there_o be_v no_o shine_v of_o the_o fire_n but_o only_o a_o glimpse_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o a_o glow_a or_o red_a hot_a stone_n which_o have_v the_o source_n or_o quality_n of_o fire_n &_o of_o the_o shine_a it_o have_v nothing_o but_o only_a glimpse_n it_o may_v be_v not_o that_o but_o in_o the_o iron_n you_o see_v a_o glimpse_n wherein_o the_o fire_n attain_v the_o water_n therefore_o also_o iron_n be_v at_o length_n consume_v and_o get_v rust_n and_o a_o stone_n not._n this_o be_v thus_o to_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o outward_a principle_n of_o this_o world_n but_o according_a to_o the_o inward_a viz._n according_a to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n observe_v this_o understanding_n the_o eternal_a fire_n burn_v eternal_o but_o it_o be_v a_o spirit_n and_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n not_o manifest_v or_o reveal_v in_o a_o fierce_a wrathful_a manner_n 138._o observe_v this_o thus_o the_o flash_n make_v a_o shine_a which_o originate_v from_o the_o fire_n and_o dwell_v not_o in_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n of_o the_o fire_n but_o it_o satiate_v or_o fulfil_v the_o fire_n total_o and_o give_v light_a also_o external_o out_o of_o the_o fire_n and_o be_v not_o hold_v or_o detain_v by_o the_o fire_n and_o bring_v also_o a_o several_a source_n or_o quality_n as_o meekness_n and_o have_v yet_o the_o fire_n virtue_n or_o power_n wit_n or_o ingenuity_n and_o art_n for_o in_o the_o light_n be_v first_o the_o fire_n source_n or_o quality_n in_o the_o essence_n manifest_v or_o reveal_v 139._o now_o the_o light_n make_v no_o source_n or_o pain_n but_o go_v in_o itself_o into_o a_o meekness_n and_o be_v also_o desirous_a proceed_v from_o the_o fire_n source_n or_o quality_n and_o its_o desire_v be_v also_o a_o attract_v as_o viz._n of_o the_o meekness_n and_o virtue_n or_o power_n into_o itself_o and_o impregna_v itself_o with_o meekness_n 140._o for_o the_o light_n be_v also_o a_o fire_n a_o very_a yearning_n fire_n a_o desirous_a fire_n and_o a_o continual_a find_v fire_n which_o continual_o find_v what_o be_v generate_v in_o the_o original_a 141._o all_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n which_o originate_v in_o the_o fierce_a wrathful_a fire_n be_v manifest_v or_o reveal_v in_o the_o light_n and_o the_o light_n desire_v that_o in_o meekness_n for_o the_o fire_n fierce_a wrathfulness_n and_o the_o light_n shine_v be_v two_o principle_n of_o a_o twofold_a source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n each_o dwell_v in_o itself_o and_o the_o one_o comprehend_v not_o the_o other_o in_o eternity_n and_o yet_o the_o one_o be_v the_o other_o life_n and_o cause_n understand_v it_o thus_o 142._o as_o we_o consider_v that_o a_o horrible_a anxious_a source_n or_o quality_n make_v a_o sink_v down_o in_o itself_o like_o a_o death_n where_o then_o be_v the_o part_a limit_n and_o yet_o the_o anguish_n in_o itself_o retain_v its_o source_n or_o quality_n but_o the_o sink_n into_o itself_o as_o a_o death_n enter_v into_o its_o aethen_n where_o then_o the_o anguish-life_n be_v no_o more_o apprehend_v for_o the_o sink_a break_v itself_o forth_o out_o of_o the_o anguish-source_n like_o a_o die_a and_o be_v a_o die_a whereas_o yet_o in_o the_o eternity_n be_v no_o die_v but_o such_o a_o entrance_n into_o another_o world_n of_o another_o principle_n of_o another_o source_n or_o fountain-quality_n 143._o for_o the_o sink_n go_v into_o the_o still_a eternity_n as_o into_o the_o liberty_n and_o be_v the_o fierce_a wrathful_a fires-source_n continue_v in_o itself_o in_o its_o life_n therefore_o be_v the_o sink_v a_o go_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o fire-life_n and_o yet_o be_v from_o the_o fire-life_n but_o its_o source_n or_o fountain-spirit_n it_o have_v not_o for_o it_o be_v break_v off_o in_o death_n and_o be_v the_o parting-limit_n in_o death_n that_o so_o the_o sink_a press_v through_o death_n and_o have_v another_o substantiality_n viz._n another_o water_n wherein_o the_o light_n shine_v wherein_o no_o fierce_a wrathfulness_n be_v 144._o for_o in_o the_o eternity_n be_v no_o death_n that_o withholdeth_a but_o only_o such_o a_o entrance_n in_o for_o that_o which_o have_v no_o beginning_n that_o have_v also_o no_o end_n nor_o ground_n and_o thus_o originate_v the_o light_n out_o of_o the_o fires-source_n 145._o for_o the_o light_n dwell_v in_o the_o fire_n &_o also_o not_o in_o the_o fire_n it_o be_v in_o another_o world_n and_o be_v another_o fire_n which_o be_v call_v love_n virtue_n or_o power_n wonder_n sweet_a mild_a or_o gentle_a pure_a or_o clean_a and_o be_v no_o substance_n and_o also_o not_o nature_n but_o without_o or_o beside_o nature_n in_o another_o principle_n 146._o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o light-flaming_a powerful_a majesty_n and_o have_v its_o own_o spirit_n which_o bring_v the_o sink_n through_o death_n which_o from_o the_o anguish_n be_v the_o sink_n through_o death_n which_o make_v the_o sprout_v out_o through_o death_n 147._o it_o be_v in_o itself_o free_a both_o from_o the_o fire_n and_o from_o the_o light_n and_o be_v hold_v or_o detain_v by_o none_o as_o little_a as_o the_o fire_n hold_v or_o detain_v the_o air_n and_o it_o go_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o light_n out_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o light_n and_o open_v all_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o the_o fire-source_n or_o quality_n and_o also_o in_o the_o lights-source_n or_o quality_n 148._o but_o it_o have_v no_o perception_n in_o itself_o of_o the_o fire_n but_o it_o be_v a_o blower_n up_o of_o the_o light-fire_n a_o bringer_n of_o the_o love-essence_n into_o the_o desirous_a power_n or_o virtue_n a_o opener_n of_o the_o love-essence_n 149._o and_o yet_o that_o we_o may_v be_v understand_v when_o we_o speak_v thus_o of_o the_o love-essence_n as_o of_o another_o fire_n observe_v it_o behold_v when_o the_o light_n become_v thus_o generate_v through_o the_o fierce_a wrathfulness_n so_o that_o the_o one_o fire_n go_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o other_o than_o the_o light-fire_n desire_v no_o more_o the_o fierce_a wrathfulness_n for_o it_o have_v die_v away_o from_o the_o fierce_a wrathfulness_n and_o be_v a_o own_o peculiar_a fire_n in_o itself_o and_o send_v its_o life_n out_o of_o itself_o which_o be_v a_o sprout_v for_o it_o be_v also_o desirous_a and_o attractive_a whence_o essence_n exist_v and_o have_v all_o form_n in_o it_o as_o the_o fire-life_n also_o have_v such_o a_o rise_n up_o or_o spring_v 150._o but_o the_o essence_n be_v generate_v out_o of_o the_o light_n power_n and_o virtue_n and_o so_o the_o one_o always_o taste_v the_o other_o there_o be_v a_o mere_a pure_a desire_v and_o satisfy_v or_o fulfil_n whereas_o yet_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o the_o love_n desire_v can_v draw_v into_o itself_o therefore_o it_o draw_v itself_o into_o itself_o and_o impregnate_v itself_o out_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o majesty_n so_o that_o that_o very_o will_v be_v full_a and_o yet_o also_o nothing_o be_v there_o but_o such_o power_n and_o virtue_n and_o image_n of_o the_o wonder_n it_o be_v a_o similitude_n of_o the_o birth_n or_o geniture_n and_o be_v the_o power_n and_o virtue_n itself_o it_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o spirit_n whence_o the_o spirit_n have_v its_o food_n for_o it_o go_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o image_n and_o flow_v or_o bubble_v as_o the_o air_n in_o this_o world_n do_v 151._o but_o now_o if_o the_o spirit_n find_v no_o similitude_n which_o be_v without_o or_o beside_o it_o and_o yet_o find_v itself_o thus_o in_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n than_o it_o be_v also_o desirous_a for_o it_o dwele_v in_o the_o power_n or_o virtue_n ground_n and_o be_v not_o itself_o the_o power_n or_o virtue_n therefore_o its_o desire_v also_o make_v a_o similitude_n according_a to_o it_o
for_o a_o desire_v be_v a_o seek_v and_o in_o the_o seek_n stand_v the_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o seek_v the_o figure_n make_v the_o seek_v manifest_a or_o reveal_v 152._o thus_o the_o spirit_n dwell_v also_o in_o its_o own_o figure_n in_o the_o power_n or_o virtue_n and_o in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o majesty_n and_o be_v a_o image_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n property_n 135._o not_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o image_n but_o the_o seek_v &_o its_o desire_v be_v the_o image_n for_o it_o dwell_v in_o its_o self_n in_o its_o seek_n and_o be_v another_o person_n in_o its_o figure_n viz._n the_o power_n or_o virtue_n figure_n and_o according_a to_o this_o substance_n be_v god_n call_v threefold_a in_o person_n 154._o but_o that_o we_o may_v open_v your_o eye_n wide_a to_o see_v all_z the_o ground_n of_o the_o deity_n as_o it_o now_o will_n and_o must_v be_v therefore_o behold_v now_o the_o great_a wonder_n which_o we_o have_v lose_v with_o go_v out_o of_o paradise_n where_o we_o must_v labour_v in_o the_o six_o day_n work_v of_o this_o world_n and_o so_o see_v what_o and_o where_o we_o be_v and_o you_o will_v find_v here_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o have_v stand_v hide_v even_o to_o nature_n jeova_n 155._o behold_v when_o you_o will_v speak_v of_o the_o trinity_n look_v upon_o the_o first_o number_n upon_o a_o upon_o the_o eternal_a beginning_n which_o be_v the_o father_n and_o then_o look_v upon_o the_o o_o in_o the_o middle_n which_o be_v the_o son_n then_o look_v upon_o the_o v._o which_o be_v the_o exit_fw-la of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o go_v into_o itself_o with_o the_o sink_n through_o the_o sharp_a fierce_a wrath_n into_o the_o second_o principle_n which_o have_v e_z and_o go_v through_o the_o power_n or_o virtue_n forth_o as_o a_o light-flaming_a flash_n which_o have_v i._o 156._o now_o take_v the_o swift-going_a of_o the_o flame_a flash_n to_o it_o which_o be_v t_n allmach_n t_n des_fw-fr ewigen_n gotte_n the_o omnipotence_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n which_o there_o in_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n as_o a_o flash_n destroy_v and_o in_o der_fw-mi lieb_n in_o the_o love_n in_o the_o i_o as_o a_o mighty_a love_a god_n exult_v through_o press_v and_o powerful_o exalt_v or_o rise_v up_o and_o if_o you_o put_v the_o i_o thereinto_o then_o have_v you_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o divine_a substance_n in_o the_o power_n or_o virtue_n it_o be_v ein_fw-mi engel_n a_o angel_n and_o in_o the_o out-birth_n out_o of_o the_o centre_n it_o be_v goldt_n gold_n 157._o the_o world_n be_v covetous_a and_o full_a of_o boast_v especial_o those_o that_o will_v be_v account_v master_n of_o art_n and_o say_v they_o know_v gold_n and_o be_v blind_a people_n why_o see_v you_o it_o not_o thou_o will_v say_v how_o go_v with_o the_o outward_a life_n into_o death_n there_o must_v the_o outward_a life_n die_v and_o in_o the_o anguish_n give_v itself_o forth_o into_o the_o number_n of_o the_o crown_n viz._n into_o the_o thousand_o number_n 1000_o there_o be_v the_o end_n and_o death_n arise_v and_o stand_v up_o to_o a_o glorious_a life_n with_o a_o new_a fair_a body_n and_o you_o need_v give_v nothing_o to_o it_o but_o the_o soul_n it_o bring_v forth_o manifold_a fruit_n there_o thou_o have_v a_o angel_n which_o be_v free_a from_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n for_o it_o be_v total_o clean_a &_o pure_a seek_v it_o and_o thou_o will_v find_v it_o 158._o but_o thou_o suppose_v perhaps_o to_o find_v it_o thus_o in_o thy_o old_a garment_n no_o friend_n we_o will_v now_o teach_v you_o another_o a_o b_o c_o learn_v that_o first_o then_o seek_v if_o you_o will_v then_o have_v a_o love_n to_o it_o if_o not_o leave_v it_o for_o the_o *_o gold_n o_o be_v muchnoble_a and_o more_o precious_a than_o the_o l._n a_o exposition_n of_o the_o philosophic_a globe_n or_o eye_n of_o both_o the_o threefold_a join_v circle_n which_o especial_o signify_v the_o two_o eternal_a principle_n wherein_o yet_o the_o three_o also_o be_v clear_o understand_v and_o how_o a_o man_n shall_v understand_v they_o 162._o these_o join_v circle_n shall_v be_v like_o globe_n a_o round_a globe_n have_v the_o cross_n globe_n go_v through_o it_o for_o it_o be_v a_o eye_n of_o the_o globe_n eternity_n that_o a_o man_n can_v delineate_v full_o it_o be_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o all_o substance_n signify_v the_o eye_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o looking-glass_n of_o wisdom_n wherein_o from_o eternity_n all_o wonder_n have_v be_v see_v and_o hereby_o be_v delinate_v how_o it_o come_v into_o substance_n for_o the_o reader_n of_o this_o book_n to_o think_v and_o consider_v of_o 163._o not_o in_o such_o a_o way_n as_o if_o a_o man_n can_v full_o describe_v or_o delineate_v it_o for_o the_o mind_n or_o thought_n only_o can_v apprehend_v it_o and_o only_o that_o mind_n which_o can_v walk_v in_o the_o divine_a mystery_n not_o through_o art_n or_o reason_n reason_n but_o through_o the_o understanding_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n open_v to_o the_o humane_a souls-spirit_n in_o the_o great_a mystery_n else_o it_o can_v not_o be_v apprehend_v 164._o the_o reader_n shall_v take_v consideration_n of_o the_o number_n and_o then_o of_o what_o stand_v within_o or_o without_o the_o join_v circle_n or_o where_o every_o word_n in_o the_o circle_n circle_n begin_v and_o end_v it_o have_v all_o its_o assure_a certain_a signification_n for_o every_o word_n stand_v in_o its_o exact_a place_n 165._o that_o which_o be_v without_o the_o join_v circle_n or_o wheel_n signify_v the_o libirty_a of_o the_o abyss_n without_o or_o beside_o the_o principle_n number_n 1._o abyss_n 166._o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o the_o abyss_n wherein_o the_o divine_a substance_n in_o the_o looking-glass_n of_o wisdom_n generate_v itself_o in_o the_o ground_n be_v mark_v with_o number_n 1._o and_o number_n 2._o stand_v by_o it_o so_o also_o round_o about_o the_o whole_a circle_n circle_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o three_o *_o circle_n 167._o the_o three_o join_v circle_n draw_v about_o one_o another_o signify_v the_o eternal_a birth_n or_o geniture_n of_o the_o divine_a substance_n together_o with_o all_o eternal_a mystery_n without_o and_o within_o nature_n viz._n the_o original_a of_o all_o thing_n or_o substance_n as_o they_o be_v here_o mark_v of_o that_o half_a of_o the_o threefold_a part_v circle_n at_o the_o left_a hand_n and_o of_o numb_a 2._o 168._o the_o threefold_a part_v circle_n at_o the_o left_a where_o without_o the_o part_v circle_n stand_v number_n 2._o the_o mystery_n without_o or_o beside_o nature_n signify_v how_o the_o profundity_n or_o text._n groundlesness_n bring_v itself_o into_o a_o ground_n viz._n the_o eye_n of_o eternity_n the_o first_o will_n which_o be_v call_v father_n of_o eterternity_n and_o of_o all_o beginning_n how_o in_o the_o trinity_n in_o the_o wisdom_n he_o introduce_v himself_o into_o a_o eternal_a ground_n and_o dwell_v in_o himself_o and_o possess_v himself_o and_o how_o he_o bring_v himself_o into_o nature_n and_o how_o substance_n originate_v as_o also_o perceptibility_n and_o perception_n of_o that_o half_a of_o the_o threefold_a part_v circle_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n 169._o the_o other_o threefold_a part_v circle_n at_o the_o right_n signify_v the_o divine_a substance_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n together_o with_o the_o angelical_a world_n which_o originate_v out_o of_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o the_o eternity_n and_o be_v manifest_v or_o reveal_v through_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o eye_n in_o the_o circle_n 171._o the_o whole_a eye_n in_o the_o circle_n where_o the_o cross_n go_v through_o with_o a_o angle_n or_o point_n and_o line_n signify_v each_o of_o they_o a_o world_n both_o at_o the_o left_a and_o right_a at_o the_o leave_v it_o signify_v the_o great_a mystery_n of_o the_o dark_a world_n where_o the_o wonder-eye_n introduce_v itself_o in_o nature_n at_o the_o right_n it_o signify_v the_o light-world_n where_o the_o divine_a mystery_n have_v through_o the_o fire_n bring_v itself_o forth_o and_o dwell_v in_o the_o majestic_a light_n with_o the_o first_o mystery_n of_o wonder_n a_o exposition_n of_o the_o circle_n at_o the_o left_a hand_n numb_a 3_o 4_o 5._o 173._o the_o three_o character_n or_o letter_n aov_n mark_v with_o number_n 3_o 4_o 5_o signify_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a deity_n without_o or_o beside_o nature_n how_o it_o manifest_v or_o reveal_v itself_o in_o nature_n of_o a_o num._n 3._o and_o tincture_n num._n 6._o 174._o a_o signify_v the_o first_o profound_a or_o groundless_a or_o unsearchable_a will_n which_o be_v call_v father_n go_v about_o that_o *_o circle_n circle_n to_o the_o nether_a point_n of_o it_o there_o stand_v tincture_n number_v 6._o which_o be_v the_o will_n ens_fw-la and_o the_o first_o beginning_n to_o
56._o 228._o but_o man_n be_v out_o of_o the_o mystery_n create_v a_o image_n and_o similitude_n of_o or_o according_a to_o god_n to_o or_o for_o god_n wonder_n therefore_o at_o the_o right_n number_v 54._o stand_v wonder_n for_o he_o be_v a_o wonder_n of_o all_o thing_n or_o substance_n a_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n or_o substance_n take_v out_o of_o all_o thing_n or_o substance_n and_o be_v in_o the_o inward_a image_n a_o angel_n as_o next_o wonder_n in_o the_o liberty_n stand_v angel_n numb_a 55._o for_o his_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o the_o liberty_n of_o god_n viz._n in_o the_o majesty_n as_o beyond_o the_o word_n angel_n number_v 56._o spirit_n stand_v which_o all_o signify_v the_o right_a or_o true_a man_n viz._n the_o first_o before_o the_o fall_n and_o the_o second_o in_o christ_n into_o which_o he_o must_v enter_v again_o or_o be_v rend_v or_o separate_v from_o god_n four_o element_n numb_a 57_o 229._o under_o mystery_n number_v 55._o stand_v four_o element_n they_o begin_v at_o the_o left_a on_o the_o outward_a left_a circle_n and_o go_v to_o the_o right_n through_o the_o cross_n through_o circle_n two_o circle_n signify_v the_o outward_a world_n which_o originate_v as_o a_o out-birth_n out_o of_o the_o inward_a substance_n on_o the_o outward_a circle_n and_o bring_v its_o wonder_n into_o the_o mystery_n first_o into_o the_o second_o principle_n into_o the_o first_o two_o circle_n for_o they_o shall_v not_o go_v with_o their_o substance_n into_o the_o liberty_n through_o the_o liberty_n three_o circle_n at_o the_o right_n but_o pass_v in_o the_o principle_n into_o the_o mystery_n and_o in_o the_o principle_n be_v try_v or_o purge_v in_o the_o fire_n for_o there_o be_v the_o limit_v of_o separation_n the_o soul_n joy_n in_o ternario_fw-la sancto_fw-it number_n 58._o 230._o above_o on_o the_o second_o circle_n at_o the_o right_a number_n 45._o stand_v son_n the_o same_o be_v the_o judge_n and_o separator_n and_o beneath_o on_o the_o liberty_n same_o circle_n number_v 58._o stand_v soul_n joy_n in_o ternario_fw-la sancto_fw-it in_o the_o holy_a ternary_n signify_v that_o the_o soul_n shall_v have_v joy_n in_o its_o work_n which_o it_o have_v wrought_v in_o the_o four_o element_n to_o the_o praise_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n which_o it_o have_v introduce_v into_o the_o angelical_a world_n into_o the_o mystery_n for_o the_o four_o element_n stand_v with_o their_o root_n in_o the_o great_a mystery_n 231._o and_o be_v the_o earth_n not_o come_v into_o such_o a_o perish_a condition_n and_o that_o the_o devil_n poison_n and_o kindle_v or_o inflammation_n have_v not_o be_v do_v it_o be_v still_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o or_o in_o the_o other_o three_o element_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v now_o in_o the_o heavenly_a substance_n spiritual_a body_n habitation_n num._n 59_o 232._o this_o bit_n have_v adam_n swallow_v down_o into_o himself_o and_o thereby_o lose_v his_o angel_n form_n for_o the_o four_o element_n shall_v stand_v hide_v in_o he_o and_o he_o shall_v live_v only_o in_o the_o one_o element_n in_o god_n power_n and_o virtue_n and_o know_v or_o experiment_n nothing_o of_o the_o evil_a as_o at_o the_o right_n in_o the_o liberty_n number_v 59_o stand_v the_o spiritual_a man_n habitation_n there_o shall_v the_o image_n body_n dwell_v viz._n the_o soul_n body_n but_o that_o become_v hinder_v from_o it_o it_o must_v now_o under_o the_o earth_n and_o become_v include_v or_o shut_v up_o in_o the_o earthliness_n earth_n number_v 60._o 233._o under_o the_o four_o element_n stand_v earth_n number_v 60._o signify_v that_o the_o earth_n be_v whole_o fall_v back_o to_o the_o inner_a world_n for_o the_o word_n touch_v neither_o the_o circle_n left_a nor_o the_o right_a circle_n it_o be_v as_o a_o death_n but_o the_o cross_n go_v through_o it_o signify_v its_o restauration_n or_o bring_v again_o to_o what_o it_o be_v that_o the_o humane_a earth_n be_v newborn_a or_o regenerate_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o the_o heavenly_a and_o divine_a substance_n shall_v be_v sever_v from_o the_o dark_a world_n substance_n through_o the_o fire_n of_o god_n where_o then_o shall_v be_v new_a earth_n in_o a_o heavenly_a source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n form_n essence_n and_o property_n and_o that_o which_o be_v hide_v in_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o heavenly_a part_n shall_v sprout_v or_o spring_v again_o further_a be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o the_o earth_n stand_v thus_o upon_o or_o in_o the_o abyss_n for_o it_o reach_v no_o principle_n therefore_o it_o must_v pass_v away_o or_o vanish_v earthly_a man_n numb_a 61._o 234._o underneath_o stand_v number_n 61._o earthly_a man_n where_o the_o cross_n go_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o word_n which_o signify_v the_o fall_v earthly_a man_n who_o be_v fall_v under_o and_o into_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v he_o be_v fall_v home_o or_o back_n to_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o cross_n part_v or_o separate_v the_o word_n earthly_a and_o man_n for_o man_n shall_v again_o become_v separate_v from_o the_o earth_n and_o enter_v into_o his_o eternal_a part_n either_o into_o the_o light_n or_o dark_a world_n wonder_n number_v 62._o 235._o under_o the_o cross_a line_n stand_v number_n 62._o wonder_n signify_v that_o the_o evil_a product_n wonder_n also_o the_o evil_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n when_o god_n will_v make_v separation_n fall_v home_o or_o back_n to_o the_o abyss_n of_o darkness_n and_o that_o shall_v be_v to_o all_o devil_n and_o evil_a man_n their_o earth_n on_o which_o they_o shall_v dwell_v one_o among_o another_o for_o the_o abyss_n stand_v under_o it_o below_o at_o number_n 1_o babel_n number_v 63._o 236._o near_o wonder_n stand_v babel_n number_v 63._o signify_v how_o babel_n be_v only_o a_o wonder_n of_o the_o abyss_n and_o work_v only_a wonder_n in_o the_o abyss_n own_o reason_n in_o babel_n numb_a 64._o 237._o further_o above_o under_o the_o right_n circle_n at_o the_o right_n after_o earthly_a man_n number_v 64._o stand_v own_o or_o self_n reason_n in_o babel_n which_o go_v round_o about_o the_o outside_n of_o the_o circle_n of_o the_o second_o principle_n and_o go_v in_o own_o self_n authority_n under_o the_o divine_a world_n backward_o and_o suppose_v she_o be_v in_o god_n and_o serve_v or_o worship_v he_o but_o be_v without_o god_n in_o self_n she_o or_o it_o teach_v and_o do_v only_o its_o own_o thing_n or_o matter_n for_o itself_o for_o its_o own_o end_n it_o rule_v the_o outward_a world_n in_o own_o self_n reason_n without_o god_n spirit_n and_o will_n only_o according_a to_o its_o own_o will._n therefore_o it_o go_v about_o the_o light_a world_n dissemble_v in_o hypocrisy_n and_o give_v god_n good_a word_n and_o continue_v only_o without_o god_n upon_o or_o in_o the_o abyss_n and_o thereinto_o also_o it_o fall_v back_o and_o enter_v wonder_v of_o the_o great_a folly_n num._n 65._o 238._o under_o own_o reason_n number_v 65._o stand_v wonder_v of_o the_o great_a folly_n signify_v babel_n who_o have_v find_v all_o art_n suttelty_n and_o cunning_a politic_a device_n and_o lose_v itself_o it_o seek_v gold_n and_o lose_v god_n it_o take_v earth_n for_o gold_n death_n for_o life_n and_o that_o be_v the_o great_a folly_n that_o be_v find_v in_o the_o substance_n of_o all_o substance_n as_o be_v sufficient_o mention_v in_o other_o place_n the_o conclusion_n 239._o thus_o we_o see_v when_o we_o be_v at_o home_n not_o in_o this_o world_n but_o in_o the_o two_o inward_a world_n in_o which_o soever_o we_o labour_v here_o into_o that_o we_o enter_v when_o we_o die_v we_o must_v lose_v the_o outward_a we_o must_v only_o be_v newborn_a or_o regenerate_v on_o the_o cross_n 240._o babel_n have_v turn_v itself_o whole_o away_o from_o the_o cross_n which_o signify_v the_o proud_a own_o self_n reason-wise_a subtle_a man_n who_o rule_n and_o order_n themselves_o in_o or_o according_a to_o the_o wit_n or_o ingenuity_n of_o folly_n 241._o the_o earthly_a man_n on_o the_o cross_n number_v 61._o signify_v the_o simple_a heap_n or_o company_n which_o yet_o hang_v to_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o become_v at_o length_n newborn_a or_o regenerate_v through_o the_o cross_n 242._o but_o reason_n reason_n have_v even_o rend_v and_o tear_v itself_o off_o from_o the_o cross_n in_o its_o own_o self_n pleasure_n and_o voluptuousness_n in_o its_o own_o pomp_n may_v or_o power_n and_o law_n and_o that_o be_v a_o wonder_n of_o folly_n which_o even_o the_o devil_n do_v scorn_n and_o deride_v 243._o this_o the_o reader_n shall_v further_o consider_v of_o for_o there_o lie_v much_o under_o it_o it_o have_v the_o understanding_n of_o all_o the_o three_o world_n see_v thyself_o therein_o it_o be_v a_o right_n true_a looking-glass_n for_o the_o number_n three_o be_v a_o cross_n and_o have_v two_o
kingdom_n in_o one_o part_v themselves_o thus_o by_o the_o sink_n down_o through_o death_n 244._o therefore_o will_v the_o devil_n be_v above_o god_n and_o therefore_o god_n become_v man_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v the_o soul_n out_o of_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n through_o death_n into_o another_o life_n into_o another_o world_n which_o yet_o stand_v in_o the_o first_o but_o they_o turn_v their_o back_n as_o this_o reason_n figure_n stand_v and_o the_o cross_n stand_v between_o both_o the_o principle_n and_o go_v out_o of_o the_o fire-life_n into_o the_o light-life_n 245._o belove_a sir_n understand_v we_o thus_o the_o soul_n originate_v in_o the_o fire-life_n for_o without_o the_o fire_n source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n no_o spirit_n do_v subsist_v and_o it_o go_v with_o its_o own_o self_n will_v out_o of_o itself_o forth_o through_o death_n that_o be_v it_o esteem_v itself_o as_o dead_a and_o sink_v down_o in_o itself_o like_o death_n and_o so_o fall_v with_o its_o will_n through_o the_o fire_n principle_n into_o god_n light-eye_n and_o then_o it_o be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n chariot_n on_o which_o he_o ride_v 246._o but_o when_o it_o will_v go_v of_o itself_o it_o than_o continue_v in_o its_o own_o fire-nest_n in_o the_o original_a where_o it_o be_v awaken_v like_o lucifer_n for_o it_o be_v awaken_v at_o the_o beginning_n point_v of_o the_o cross_n at_o the_o left_a as_o in_o this_o figure_n be_v to_o be_v see_v that_o be_v its_o original_n as_o shall_v be_v further_o mention_v 247._o the_o soul_n be_v a_o total_a figure_n of_o a_o cross_n and_o be_v like_o a_o cross-tree_n according_a to_o the_o outward_a image_n of_o the_o body_n the_o body_n have_v two_o arm_n which_o signify_v two_o principle_n the_o body_n stand_v in_o the_o midst_n as_o a_o whole_a person_n the_o heart_n be_v the_o first_o principle_n the_o brain_n the_o seond_n the_o heart_n have_v the_o soul_n and_o the_o brain_n the_o souls-spirit_n and_o it_o be_v a_o new_a child_n and_o yet_o not_o a_o new_a one_o the_o stock_n be_v from_o eternity_n but_o the_o branch_n be_v bear_v or_o generate_v out_o of_o the_o stock_n 248._o though_o indeed_o it_o have_v not_o be_v a_o soul_n from_o eternity_n yet_o it_o have_v in_o the_o virgin_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o cross_n from_o eternity_n be_v know_v and_o in_o the_o root_n belong_v to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o in_o the_o soul_n to_o god_n the_o son_n &_o in_o the_o will_n to_o god_n the_o holy_a spirit_n 249._o and_o be_v it_o can_v not_o stand_v in_o the_o father_n in_o its_o will_n when_o it_o will_v rule_v in_o its_o will_n and_o thereby_o fall_v into_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n therefore_o the_o father_n give_v it_o to_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n take_v it_o into_o himself_o and_o become_v in_o it_o a_o man_n and_o bring_v it_o again_o with_o or_o by_o the_o word_n fiat_n into_o the_o majesty_n into_o the_o light_n for_o the_o son_n introduce_v it_o through_o the_o angel_n and_o death_n again_o into_o the_o eye_n of_o holiness_n at_o the_o right_n into_o another_o world_n in_o god_n to_o the_o angel_n of_o which_o here-following_a shall_v be_v mention_v further_a 250._o now_o come_v we_o again_o to_o the_o six_o form_n of_o fire_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v know_v why_o we_o set_v the_o cross_n here_o which_o else_o be_v the_o ten_o number_n account_v according_a to_o the_o order_n or_o x._o way_n of_o letter_n reason_n but_o according_a to_o the_o two_o principle_n the_o eye_n appear_v part_v the_o cross_n belong_v to_o the_o place_n between_o the_o five_o and_o the_o six_o form_n wherein_o light_a and_o darkness_n part_n 251._o but_o know_v that_o god_n be_v the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n therefore_o we_o set_v the_o cross_n according_a to_o reason_n at_o the_o end_n for_o there_o we_o go_v through_o death_n into_o life_n it_o be_v our_o resurrection_n 10._o 252._o the_o ten_o number_n 10._o be_v again_o the_o first_o and_o also_o the_o last_o and_o beyond_o through_o that_o be_v death_n and_o after_o or_o beyond_o death_n the_o hell_n that_o be_v the_o fierce_a wrath_n of_o darkness_n that_o be_v external_o without_o or_o beyond_o the_o cross_n for_o it_o fall_v again_o into_o the_o a_o and_o in_o the_o a_o be_v the_o creator_n into_o which_o lucifer_n will_v have_v flien_a back_n but_o be_v thrust_v out_o into_o the_o darkness_n and_o there_o be_v his_o kingdom_n in_o the_o source_n or_o torment_n 253._o you_o shall_v understand_v we_o thus_o that_o we_o by_o the_o twofold_a eye_n understand_v one_o entire_a round_a globe_n thus_o partible_a or_o each_o half_n divide_v asunder_o and_o turn_v away_o from_o the_o other_o where_o the_o cross_n be_v stand_v from_o eternity_n within_o it_o a_o man_n can_v full_o describe_v it_o with_o any_o pen_n or_o pencil_n for_o it_o be_v so_o in_o one_o another_o it_o be_v but_o one_o only_o &_o yet_o two_o the_o spirit_n understand_v it_o only_o and_o whosoever_o do_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o regeneration_n through_o the_o death_n upon_o the_o cross_n as_o viz._n into_o god_n body_n he_o understand_v not_o this_o and_o let_v he_o leave_v it_o uncontrolled_a or_o he_o will_v be_v a_o maker_n and_o controuler-devil_n we_o will_v have_v the_o reader_n faithful_o warn_v and_o it_o be_v in_o earnest_a sincerity_n and_o true_a zeal_n 254._o for_o this_o figure_n have_v all_o or_o total_a ground_n or_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o deep_a as_o any_o a_o spirit_n be_v in_o itself_o and_o be_v not_o apprehensible_a or_o knowable_a to_o the_o reader_n without_o right_n or_o eye_n true_a eye_n also_o a_o man_n can_v set_v it_o down_o in_o due_a &_o exact_a order_n aright_o with_o word_n any_o word_n for_o the_o first_o be_v also_o the_o last_o and_o the_o middle_n go_v through_o all_o &_o yet_o be_v not_o know_v or_o apprehend_v but_o in_o itself_o therefore_o search_v be_v not_o the_o chief_a or_o most_o especial_a mean_n to_o know_v or_o apprehend_v the_o mystery_n but_o to_o be_v bear_v or_o generate_v in_o god_n be_v the_o right_a itself_o invention_n or_o find_v for_o without_o that_o be_v spirit_n babel_n 255._o all_o lie_v in_o the_o will_n and_o in_o the_o earnest_a sincerity_n that_o the_o will_v enter_v into_o the_o magia_n for_o the_o eternity_n be_v magical_a all_o be_v out_o of_o the_o magia_n come_v into_o substance_n for_o in_o the_o eternity_n in_o the_o abyss_n be_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v be_v the_o magia_n 256._o and_o out_o of_o the_o magia_n exi_v philosophy_n which_o search_v out_o the_o magia_n and_o seek_v therein_o and_o find_v astrology_n eternal_o and_o astrology_n seek_v again_o its_o master_n preceptor_n or_o teacher_n and_o maker_n composer_n or_o producer_n viz._n a_o stronomy_n the_o sulphur_n &_o the_o mercury_n which_o have_v a_o principle_n of_o its_o own_o and_o the_o three_o magia_n be_v therein_o viz._n the_o medicus_n the_o physician_n who_o seek_v the_o corrupter_n or_o disease_n and_o will_v heal_v or_o cure_v it_o but_o he_o find_v the_o four_o magia_n viz._n the_o theologus_fw-la the_o divine_a who_o seek_v the_o turba_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o will_v heal_v the_o turba_n but_o he_o find_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o first_o magia_n and_o there_o he_o see_v that_o all_o be_v the_o wonder_n of_o the_o magia_n and_o there_o he_o leave_v seek_v and_o become_v a_o magus_n in_o the_o first_o will_n for_o he_o see_v that_o he_o have_v all_o power_n to_o find_v &_o to_o make_v what_o he_o will_v and_o there_o he_o make_v of_o himself_o a_o angel_n and_o continue_v in_o himself_o and_o thus_o he_o be_v free_a from_o all_o other_o and_o continue_v stand_v eternal_o this_o be_v the_o high_a ground_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o all_o substance_n 257._o and_o though_o indeed_o the_o whore_n at_o babel_n will_v not_o relish_v this_o therefore_o we_o say_v with_o good_a ground_n that_o babel_n in_o her_o child_n be_v in_o magic_n philosophy_n astrology_n astronomy_n medicine_n or_o physic_n and_o theology_n or_o divinity_n bear_v or_o generate_v of_o whoredom_n 258._o babel_n be_v the_o true_a child_n of_o none_o of_o these_o she_o be_v a_o perverse_a stubborn_a obstinate_a bastard_n we_o have_v apprehend_v or_o know_v she_o in_o the_o a_o and_o o_o by_o search_v of_o her_o philosophy_n and_o astrology_n and_o have_v find_v she_o in_o all_o looking-glass_n to_o be_v a_o whore_n who_o commit_v whoredom_n in_o all_o looking-glass_n 259._o she_o say_v she_o be_v the_o eye_n but_o she_o have_v a_o false_a or_o adulterous_a eye_n that_o glance_v out_o of_o or_o from_o her_o whoredom_n out_o of_o pride_n covetousness_n envy_n and_o anger_n and_o her_o seat_n in_o the_o magia_n be_v the_o averse_a back-turned_n leave_v eye_n mask_n she_o
triurnph_v upon_o the_o cross_n but_o she_o enter_v not_o in_o into_o the_o centre_n she_o will_v not_o go_v through_o death_n into_o life_n 260._o she_o say_v she_o live_v but_o have_v be_v injurious_a unrighteous_a life_n yet_o that_o be_v her_o right_a or_o proper_a life_n if_o she_o will_v live_v in_o it_o alone_o to_o herself_o but_o she_o oppress_v born_v &_o compel_v the_o child_n that_o be_v bear_v or_o regenerate_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o tread_v they_o under_o foot_n 261._o therefore_o have_v the_o crossbent_a and_o draw_v its_o bow_n and_o will_v shoot_v away_o babel_n from_o the_o cross_n signify_v the_o spirit_n of_o wonder_n in_o the_o magia_n the_o seven_o form_n of_o fire_n 262._o one_o magia_n go_v always_o out_o of_o the_o other_o and_o be_v the_o other_o looking-glass_n and_o eye_n where_o the_o wonder_n be_v apprehend_v or_o know_v and_o propagate_v for_o in_o the_o abyss_n be_v nothing_o and_o in_o the_o magia_n be_v all_o every_o looking-glass_n be_v a_o centre_n and_o yet_o of_o its_o own_o for_o the_o first_o pleasure_n or_o longing_n seek_v and_o desire_v generate_v that_o it_o be_v the_o model_n of_o the_o first_o 263._o for_o when_o i_o search_v for_o the_o beginning_n of_o substance_n than_o i_o find_v the_o eye_n which_o be_v god_n that_o be_v a_o desirous_a will_n of_o eternity_n which_o enter_v in_o into_o itself_o and_o seek_v the_o abyss_n in_o itself_o 264._o it_o be_v in_o nothing_o but_o it_o be_v the_o abysses_n looking-glass_n and_o seek_v itself_o and_o find_v itself_o and_o that_o which_o be_v find_v seek_v again_o a_o representation_n model_n that_o it_o may_v seek_v find_v and_o see_v itself_o therein_o 265._o and_o that_o go_v on_o to_o the_o number_n 10._o ten_o and_o then_o the_o last_o findeth_z the_o first_o again_o in_o itself_o and_o thus_o the_o last_o be_v a_o model_n or_o looking-glass_n of_o the_o first_o and_o the_o first_o of_o the_o last_o and_o be_v as_o a_o eternal_a band_n and_o stand_v or_o consist_v in_o the_o will_n in_o the_o desire_a seek_v and_o find_v and_o in_o this_o substance_n be_v the_o mysterium_fw-la magnum_fw-la or_o great_a mystery_n contain_v or_o include_v 266._o but_o now_o will_v the_o middle_a in_o the_o desire_v have_v a_o satiate_a or_o fulfil_n wherein_o it_o may_v rest_v else_o all_o will_v stand_v or_o be_v in_o a_o anxious_a source_n or_o torment_n and_o the_o desire_v draw_v the_o middle_a out_o of_o all_o form_n wherewith_o it_o fill_v or_o satiate_v its_o hunger_n wherewith_o or_o whereby_o in_o itself_o it_o stand_v in_o perfection_n in_o joy_n and_o so_o out_o of_o the_o anguish_n a_o love_n come_v to_o be_v a_o satiate_a fulfil_a or_o ease_v of_o the_o source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n of_o pain_n and_o the_o middle_n be_v sulphur_n with_o that_o the_o spirit_n refresh_v itself_o in_o the_o will_n for_o sulphur_n have_v two_o form_n in_o itself_o viz._n power_n or_o virtue_n and_o light_n 267._o and_o that_o be_v together_o the_o substance_n generate_v out_o of_o all_o form_n it_o be_v matter_n substantiality_n corporeity_n god_n body_n christ_n flesh_n the_o heavenly_a and_o be_v the_o total_a or_o universal_a fulfil_n or_o satiate_v of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o o_o it_o be_v the_o rest_n and_o manifestation_n or_o revelation_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o stand_v in_o the_o virgin_n of_o wisdom_n 268._o the_o cross_n be_v its_o limit_n and_o be_v the_o substantiality_n which_o go_v with_o the_o sink_n into_o death_n as_o above_o mention_v where_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n remain_v in_o death_n and_o it_o be_v still_o &_o quiet_a as_o a_o death_n or_o a_o nothing_o and_o the_o life_n sprout_v out_o of_o it_o into_o another_o principle_n 269._o it_o be_v not_o the_o principle_n only_o the_o principle_n become_v generate_v in_o it_o in_o it_o be_v all_o looking-glass_n of_o the_o magia_n manifest_v or_o reveal_v moreover_o the_o wonder_n of_o the_o genetrix_fw-la it_o contain_v the_o mysterium_fw-la magnum_fw-la the_o great_a mystery_n and_o out_o of_o it_o the_o spirit_n open_v the_o wonder_n of_o eternity_n the_o spirit_n give_v it_o the_o essence_n for_o that_o be_v its_o food_n for_o its_o hunger_n 270._o it_o be_v a_o substance_n of_o wonder_n without_o number_n and_o end_n and_o be_v also_o of_o no_o beginning_n for_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o desire_v begin_v it_o from_o eternity_n and_o continue_v in_o eternity_n it_o be_v a_o body_n of_o the_o number_n three_o which_o be_v call_v god_n and_o a_o body_n of_o angel_n so_o that_o the_o spirit_n stand_v or_o be_v in_o a_o image_n else_o it_o will_v not_o be_v apprehend_v or_o know_v 271._o thus_o it_o know_v itself_o in_o the_o image_n itself_o and_o seek_v the_o best_a magia_n and_o what_o it_o seek_v that_o it_o find_v and_o eat_v it_o and_o therewith_o or_o thereby_o give_v to_o the_o body_n of_o god_n its_o will_n so_o that_o there_o be_v a_o unity_n in_o the_o holy_a principle_n 272._o for_o in_o the_o will_n of_o the_o corporeal_a spirit_n rise_v up_o the_o wonder_n those_o the_o spirit_n of_o eternity_n viz._n the_o holy_a spirit_n receive_v or_o apprehend_v and_o so_o there_o be_v a_o ring_n and_o song_n out_o of_o the_o eternal_a wonder_n for_o the_o corporeal_a spirit_n will_v be_v therein_o 273._o and_o in_o these_o seven_o form_n the_o joy_n of_o the_o deity_n become_v multiply_v and_o perfect_a for_o it_o be_v a_o fulfil_n of_o the_o eternal_a desire_v and_o be_v the_o eternal_a food_n 274._o but_o see_v all_o thing_n or_o every_o substance_n originate_v from_o the_o fire_n we_o will_v clear_o set_v before_o you_o the_o mysterum_fw-la magnum_fw-la the_o great_a mystery_n and_o plain_o show_v you_o paradise_n if_o any_o will_v be_v blind_a to_o he_o it_o be_v tell_v and_o discover_v let_v he_o go_v away_o with_o babel_n 275._o you_o know_v that_o in_o fire_n 🜂_n and_o water_n 🜄_n all_o life_n stand_v or_o consist_v and_o the_o substantiality_n be_v its_o body_n and_o the_o body_n be_v or_o exi_v out_o of_o the_o power_n or_o virtue_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n food_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v again_o the_o body_n food_n and_o the_o high_a &_o great_a nutriment_n be_v in_o itself_o for_o the_o outward_a will_v not_o hold_v or_o retain_v it_o if_o the_o right_a or_o true_a life_n be_v not_o in_o itself_o 276._o therefore_o now_o the_o fire_n be_v the_o first_o cause_n of_o the_o life_n and_o the_o light_n thereof_o be_v the_o second_o cause_n and_o the_o spirit_n the_o three_o cause_n and_o yet_o be_v but_o one_o substance_n or_o thing_n which_o close_v itself_o into_o a_o body_n and_o manifest_v and_o so_o with_o seek_v find_v 277._o and_o every_o substance_n be_v or_o consist_v in_o two_o substance_n viz._n in_o a_o outward_a and_o inward_a the_o one_o seek_v and_o find_v the_o other_o the_o outward_a be_v nature_n the_o inward_a be_v spirit_n above_o nature_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n or_o rend_v asunder_o but_o only_o in_o that_o which_o be_v include_v in_o a_o time_n therein_o the_o time_n sever_v the_o limit_n so_o that_o the_o end_n find_v the_o beginning_n 278._o thus_o you_o see_v also_o how_o out_o of_o the_o light_n the_o right_a or_o true_a substantiality_n exist_v for_o it_o be_v a_o fulfil_n or_o satiate_v of_o the_o will_n the_o water_n exi_v out_o of_o the_o meekness_n of_o the_o fight_n for_o the_o desire_v lay_v hold_v of_o the_o meekness_n and_o retain_v it_o for_o it_o be_v a_o good_a relish_n thus_o be_v the_o meekness_n substantial_a and_o a_o substance_n of_o the_o fire_n a_o fulfil_n of_o the_o desirous_a fierce_a wrath_n a_o allay_n of_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n and_o a_o corporeity_n of_o the_o time_n for_o when_o the_o body_n fall_v away_o then_o be_v its_o spirit_n in_o the_o beginning_n in_o that_o which_o have_v give_v it_o forth_o in_o that_o looking-glass_n it_o be_v 279._o so_o then_o see_v the_o source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n be_v twofold_a therefore_o be_v the_o water_n also_o twofold_a viz._n a_o outward_a and_o a_o inward_a the_o one_o belong_v to_o the_o spirit_n the_o other_o to_o the_o outward_a life_n the_o outward_a be_v account_v a_o death_n the_o inward_a be_v its_o life_n the_o outward_a stand_v between_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n and_o paradise_n in_o the_o in-sunk_a down_o death_n and_o the_o inward_a be_v the_o paradise_n itself_o for_o the_o spirit_n sprout_v therein_o out_o of_o the_o eternity_n 280._o and_o you_o may_v see_v that_o this_o be_v true_a thus_o consider_v winter_n and_o summer_n also_o cold_a and_o heat_n and_o you_o will_v soon_o perceive_v it_o if_o you_o be_v bear_v or_o generate_v internal_o and_o not_o external_o only_a but_o with_o the_o first_o magic_a will_n or_o desire_v to_o find_v god_n for_o
but_o the_o will_n take_v its_o substance_n do_n or_o work_n along_o into_o itself_o for_o they_o stand_v in_o the_o new_a body_n and_o follow_v after_o it_o therefore_o a_o man_n shall_v consider_v what_o he_o do_v in_o this_o life_n the_o nine_o form_n of_o fire_n the_o great_a earnest_a severity_n 319._o thus_o we_o understand_v that_o all_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o beginning_n and_o so_o one_o go_v out_o of_o the_o other_o and_o we_o understand_v how_o the_o fire_n be_v a_o cause_n of_o the_o life_n and_o how_o the_o life_n divide_v itself_o into_o two_o part_n and_o yet_o break_v not_o but_o only_o the_o outward_a life_n which_o fall_v home_o back_o to_o the_o turba_n which_o break_v or_o destroy_v it_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o consider_v wherein_o it_o be_v that_o the_o eternal_a life_n consist_v what_o its_o preservation_n be_v that_o the_o body_n break_v not_o for_o substantiality_n have_v a_o beginning_n 320._o and_o yet_o we_o can_v say_v with_o good_a ground_n that_o no_o end_n be_v therein_o for_o it_o must_v have_v a_o ground_n else_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o turba_n which_o find_v the_o limit_v the_o eternal_a body_n must_v stand_v in_o no_o limit_v but_o be_v free_a in_o the_o abyss_n in_o the_o eternal_a nothing_o else_o there_o will_v be_v another_o substance_n or_o thing_n again_o in_o that_o substance_n or_o thing_n which_o will_v cut_v that_o asunder_o and_o make_v a_o limit_v 321._o it_o be_v say_v before_o how_o all_o must_v go_v or_o pass_v quite_o through_o the_o fire_n that_o will_v endure_v eternal_o for_o that_o which_o remain_v in_o the_o fire_n the_o turba_n take_v that_o there_o be_v no_o spirit_n create_v in_o the_o fire_n that_o it_o shall_v remain_v in_o the_o fire_n 322._o only_o the_o turba_n have_v captivate_v marrow_n of_o they_o but_o not_o from_o or_o by_o god_n will_n or_o purpose_n for_o god_n will_n be_v only_a love_n but_o the_o turba_n be_v his_o anger-will_a which_o have_v with_o its_o vehement_a hunger_n bring_v a_o great_a kingdom_n of_o its_o manifestation_n or_o revelation_n into_o his_o wonder_n viz._n the_o devil_n and_o wicked_a soul_n of_o men._n 323._o but_o be_v the_o eternal_a life_n stand_v in_o meekness_n and_o have_v no_o death_n nor_o turba_n in_o it_o therefore_o we_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n and_o spirit_n stand_v not_o in_o the_o turba_n especial_o the_o soul_n body_n else_o the_o turba_n will_v break_v or_o destroy_v it_o 324._o to_o be_v understand_v as_o above_o mention_v thus_o that_o the_o will_n in_o the_o anguish-source_n or_o quality_n in_o the_o fire_n understand_v the_o soul_n will_v sink_v down_o into_o itself_o viz._n into_o death_n and_o shall_v not_o live_v in_o the_o fire_n and_o then_o that_o very_a will_n fall_v into_o another_o will_n viz._n into_o the_o beginning_n or_o to_o express_v it_o better_o into_o the_o free_a eternity_n into_o the_o eternal_a nothing_o where_o there_o be_v no_o source_n or_o quality_n or_o pain_n nor_o nothing_o that_o can_v either_o give_v or_o receive_v it_o 325._o but_o now_o there_o be_v in_o the_o sunkdown_a will_n no_o die_a for_o it_o be_v go_v out_o from_o the_o fiery_a beginning_n in_o the_o eye_n and_o so_o bring_v its_o life_n into_o another_o principle_n and_o dwell_v in_o the_o liberty_n and_o yet_o have_v all_o form_n of_o the_o essence_n out_o of_o the_o fire_n in_o it_o self_n but_o unperceptible_o for_o it_o be_v go_v quite_o out_o from_o the_o fire_n 326._o therefore_o its_o life_n of_o its_o essence_n be_v in_o the_o liberty_n and_o be_v also_o desirous_a and_o receive_v in_o the_o desire_v into_o its_o essence_n the_o power_n or_o virtue_n of_o the_o light_n which_o shine_v in_o the_o liberty_n that_o be_v power_n or_o virtue_n without_o turba_n for_o that_o fire_n be_v only_a love_n which_o consume_v not_o but_o continual_o desire_v and_o satiate_v so_o that_o the_o will_n of_o the_o soul_n attract_v a_o body_n 327._o for_o the_o will_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o great_a life_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o uphold_v or_o preserve_v the_o spirit_n &_o thus_o the_o soul_n become_v endue_v with_o power_n and_o virtue_n and_o dwell_v in_o two_o principle_n as_o god_n himself_o do_v and_o according_a to_o the_o outward_a in_o three_o principle_n and_o be_v the_o similitude_n of_o god_n 328._o the_o inward_a water_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o water_n of_o the_o eternal_a life_n concern_v which_o christ_n say_v 14._o whosoever_o drink_v of_o the_o water_n that_o i_o give_v he_o he_o will_v never_o thirst_v more_o this_o be_v that_o water_n 329._o the_o substantiality_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o become_v put_v on_o to_o the_o soul_n be_v god_n christ_n body_n concern_v which_o he_o say_v 56._o whosoever_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n continue_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o 330._o but_o the_o right_n true_a life_n in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o majesty_n in_o the_o ninth-number_n be_v the_o virgin_n tincture_n it_o be_v a_o fire_n and_o yet_o not_o a_o fire_n it_o burn_v but_o consume_v not_o it_o be_v the_o love_n the_o meekness_n the_o humility_n this_o be_v god_n life_n the_o holy_a soul_n life_n a_o uncorruptible_a life_n and_o a_o unsearchable_a life_n for_o it_o stand_v in_o the_o abyss_n in_o itself_o there_o be_v a_o centre_n therein_o which_o centre_n be_v its_o first_o life_n and_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o comprehend_v it_o as_o the_o fire_n do_v not_o comprehend_v the_o light_n 331._o thus_o the_o nine_o number_n be_v the_o life_n in_o the_o fire_n of_o god_n and_o be_v call_v the_o life_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o number_n three_o as_o a_o angel_n which_o stand_v before_o the_o cross_n to_o or_o for_o god_n deed_n of_o wonder_n and_o to_o or_o for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o heavenly_a honour_n and_o glory_n the_o ten_o number_n and_o form_n of_o fire_n the_o gate_n into_o the_o holy_a ternary_n 332._o we_o know_v in_o reason_n that_o where_o there_o be_v a_o root_n therein_o also_o be_v a_o desirous_a will_n as_o viz._n the_o noble_a tincture_n which_o drive_v upward_o and_o forward_o and_o seek_v a_o similitude_n according_a to_o its_o form_n 333._o the_o tincture_n be_v a_o virgin_n and_o be_v know_v or_o apprehend_v in_o god_n wisdom_n in_o the_o wonder_n it_o be_v no_o genetrix_fw-la but_o a_o opener_n or_o manifester_n of_o the_o wonder_n which_o stand_v in_o the_o wisdom_n it_o seek_v no_o looking-glass_n but_o mere_o open_v or_o discover_v the_o essence_n that_o so_o a_o total_a similitude_n may_v generate_v or_o produce_v itself_o out_o of_o the_o essence_n it_o drive_v the_o twig_n or_o branch_n out_o of_o the_o tree_n 334._o this_o we_o understand_v as_o to_o angel_n and_o soul_n which_o be_v proceed_v out_o of_o god_n essence_n out_o of_o the_o total_a tree_n the_o angel_n out_o of_o two_o principle_n and_o the_o soul_n with_o the_o body_n of_o the_o outward_a life_n out_o of_o three_o principle_n and_o therefore_o man_n be_v high_a dignify_v than_o the_o angel_n if_o he_o continue_v in_o god_n 335._o and_o in_o the_o ten_o number_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v the_o angel_n and_o soul_n awake_v and_o become_v corporise_v in_o the_o heavenly_a substantiality_n although_o the_o ten_o number_n belong_v to_o the_o place_n between_o the_o five_o and_o the_o six_o but_o in_o a_o globe_n to_o be_v understand_v so_o that_o the_o heart_n be_v in_o the_o midst_n in_o the_o centre_n which_o be_v god_n heart_n that_o be_v god_n word_n the_o power_n and_o virtue_n in_o or_o of_o the_o whole_a tree_n as_o the_o kernel_n or_o pith_n in_o the_o wood_n have_v the_o essence_n virtue_n or_o condition_n of_o the_o whole_a tree_n 336._o thus_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o the_o word_n be_v his_o heart_n which_o he_o speak_v forth_o out_o of_o all_o power_n or_o virtue_n and_o wonder_n therefore_o isaiah_n call_v it_o *_o 6._o wonder_n council_n power_n prince_n of_o peace_n viz._n a_o pacifier_n of_o the_o anger_n and_o a_o eternal_a power_n of_o wonder_n a_o counsellor_n of_o the_o genetrix_fw-la 337._o for_o the_o word_n uphold_v or_o preserve_v the_o centre_n of_o nature_n &_o be_v a_o heart_n and_o lord_n of_o nature_n it_o be_v the_o genetrix_fw-la in_o god_n eye_n a_o giver_n of_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o omnipotence_n it_o hold_v the_o fire-center_n captive_a with_o the_o love-fire_n so_o that_o it_o must_v be_v dark_a in_o itself_o and_o the_o word_n have_v only_o the_o light-life_n 338._o we_o can_v apprehend_v the_o tenth-number_n any_o otherwise_o then_o that_o it_o be_v a_o cross_n and_o be_v the_o original_a of_o the_o substance_n of_o all_o substance_n which_o substance_n part_v itself_o into_o three_o
eye_n which_o stand_v back_o to_o back_o as_o we_o have_v make_v the_o figure_n above_o with_o a_o twofold_a rainbow_n rainbow_n where_o the_o cross_n go_v or_o pierce_v through_o both_o and_o in_o the_o midst_n between_o the_o rain-bow_n bow_n one_o arm_n or_o point_n of_o the_o cross_n reach_v up_o aloft_o which_o signify_v a_o sprout_n through_o the_o fire_n through_o the_o anguish_n viz._n through_o death_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o death_n but_o a_o exit_fw-la out_o of_o itself_o into_o another_o source_n or_o fountain_n quality_n where_o it_o stand_v thus_o before_o the_o two_o bow_n in_o the_o midst_n as_o a_o sprout_n out_o of_o the_o cross_n 4._o and_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o cross_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n signify_v its_o spirit_n which_o enter_v into_o the_o light_n of_o the_o majesty_n and_o put_v on_o to_o the_o soul_n viz._n to_o the_o centre_n divine_a substantiality_n 5._o and_o the_o arm_n at_o the_o leave_v of_o the_o cross_n signify_v its_o original_a in_o the_o fire_n and_o hold_v or_o contain_v in_o it_o the_o first_o principle_n that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o father_n and_o stand_v in_o the_o original_a eye_n in_o the_o strong_a and_o stern_a power_n and_o might_n as_o a_o lord_n and_o potentate_n or_o ruler_n of_o nature_n 6._o and_o the_o under_o part_n or_o arm_n of_o the_o cross_n signify_v the_o water_n viz._n the_o humility_n or_o the_o death_n so_o to_o resemble_v it_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o rule_v in_o fire_n nor_o kindle_v that_o but_o sink_v down_o in_o itself_o and_o under_o itself_o before_o god_n majesty_n and_o account_n itself_o as_o dead_a in_o its_o will_n that_o god_n may_v live_v in_o it_o and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n conduct_v its_o regiment_n or_o government_n that_o it_o may_v not_o do_v what_o the_o will_n of_o the_o turba_n in_o the_o fire_n will_v but_o what_o the_o will_n in_o the_o light_n will_v 7._o therefore_o shall_v its_o will_v sink_v down_o under_o itself_o into_o the_o meek_a humility_n before_o god_n and_o so_o it_o go_v out_o from_o the_o turba_n of_o the_o fire_n for_o its_o will_n be_v not_o therein_o and_o so_o also_o there_o can_v no_o imagination_n be_v act_v out_o of_o which_o that_o looking-glass_n can_v be_v bear_v or_o generate_v so_o that_o it_o can_v behold_v and_o apprehend_v itself_o experimental_o in_o the_o fire_n that_o it_o be_v lordly_a whence_o it_o become_v proud_a arrogant_a or_o stubborn_a and_o will_v rule_v itself_o in_o or_o according_a to_o its_o own_o might_n or_o power_n as_o lucifer_n do_v and_o adam_n in_o paradise_n 8._o understand_v we_o aright_o thus_o the_o soul_n in_o itself_o be_v a_o globe_n with_o a_o cross_n with_o two_o eye_n one_o holy_a divine_a and_o one_o hellish_a wrathful_a one_o in_o the_o cross_n this_o it_o shall_v shut_v up_o and_o rule_v hidden_o through_o the_o anguish_n viz._n through_o death_n in_o the_o second_o principle_n therewith_o in_o the_o love_n 9_o and_o if_o it_o conceive_v or_o apprehend_v the_o love_n then_o be_v the_o fierce_a wrathful_a fire_n as_o it_o be_v dead_a and_o imperceptible_a but_o it_o be_v the_o joy-life_n of_o paradise_n else_o in_o the_o meekness_n will_v be_v no_o life_n and_o government_n or_o dominion_n if_o the_o fire_n do_v not_o give_v itself_o thereinto_o but_o it_o will_v remain_v the_o still_a eternity_n without_o substance_n for_o all_o and_o every_o substance_n or_o thing_n exi_v in_o the_o fire_n 10._o and_o three_o the_o soul_n be_v form_v according_a to_o the_o total_a body_n with_o all_o its_o member_n 11._o which_o understand_v thus_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o stock_n viz._n the_o root_n which_o appear_v like_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o number_n three_o as_o a_o eye_n a_o globe_n a_o cross_n and_o then_o its_o will_n which_o originate_v our_o of_o the_o eternal_a will_n be_v a_o spirit_n which_o the_o right_a or_o true_a soul_n have_v in_o its_o power_n and_o that_o spirit_n open_v the_o essence_n in_o the_o fire_n and_o water_n 12._o so_o that_o its_o whole_a form_n appear_v like_o a_o tree_n with_o many_o twig_n &_o branch_n and_o be_v distribute_v into_o all_o the_o branch_n of_o the_o tree_n 13._o which_o be_v thus_o to_o be_v understand_v the_o spirit_n distribute_v they_o into_o the_o whole_a body_n understand_v in_o the_o tincture_n into_o all_o the_o member_n they_o be_v all_o its_o branch_n it_o appear_v in_o its_o spirit_n no_o otherwise_o than_o as_o the_o whole_a man_n with_o all_o member_n 14._o and_o herein_o it_o be_v also_o the_o right_n true_a image_n of_o god_n for_o the_o holy_a spirit_n dwell_v in_o the_o spirit_n if_o it_o be_v true_a and_o faithful_a if_o not_o the_o devil_n dwell_v therein_o to_o which_o soever_o it_o give_v up_o itself_o or_o incline_v itself_o whether_o to_o covetousness_n and_o highmindedness_a or_o to_o love_n and_o humility_n that_o be_v own_a it_o be_v 15._o but_o if_o it_o persist_v in_o abomination_n and_o lose_v goodness_n god_n than_o it_o lose_v the_o cross_n and_o its_o eye_n be_v a_o hellish_a eye_n whereby_o the_o turba_n introduce_v the_o form_n shape_n and_o model_n of_o a_o abominable_a beast_n into_o the_o eye_n into_o the_o will_n and_o spirit_n 16._o therefore_o do_v christ_n call_v the_o pharisee_n 34._o serpent_n and_o generation_n of_o viper_n for_o so_o stand_v their_o figure_n before_o he_o in_o their_o spirit_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o pride_n state_n and_o covetous_a will_n that_o they_o will_v be_v lord_n and_o not_o servant_n of_o god_n in_o love_n and_o humility_n 17._o and_o thus_o also_o stand_v the_o figure_n of_o antichrist_n in_o babel_n as_o a_o dragon_n with_o seven_o head_n which_o be_v seven_o spirit_n upon_o which_o its_o hypocritical_a spirit_n ride_v in_o man_n image_n into_o the_o abyss_n it_o will_v needs_o be_v a_o angel_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o monster_n in_o respect_n of_o a_o right_n true_a child_n of_o god_n it_o bear_v the_o name_n indeed_o but_o its_o heart_n be_v that_o beast_n in_o the_o revelation_n of_o john_n it_o will_v have_v god_n and_o the_o devil_n too_o and_o therefore_o be_v such_o a_o monster_n as_o be_v like_o a_o man_n and_o yet_o hide_v the_o devil_n in_o and_o under_o itself_o 18._o o_o child_n of_o man_n fly_v away_o the_o door_n be_v open_a the_o turba_n be_v come_v which_o will_v destroy_v the_o image_n if_o you_o will_v not_o go_v away_o you_o must_v along_o with_o it_o there_o be_v neither_o counsel_n nor_o remedy_n but_o only_o to_o seek_v the_o right_n and_o true_a image_n in_o the_o love_n or_o else_o there_o be_v nothing_o further_a to_o be_v expect_v but_o necessity_n and_o calamity_n and_o death_n say_v the_o spirit_n of_o wonder_n 19_o this_o now_o be_v our_o direct_a answer_n that_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o first_o principle_n according_a to_o the_o original_a have_v the_o form_n of_o a_o eye_n and_o yet_o twofold_a like_o a_o heart_n wherein_o the_o cross_n stand_v 20._o and_o in_o the_o second_o principle_n it_o be_v a_o spirit_n and_o a_o total_a entire_a image_n such_o a_o one_o as_o the_o outward_a man_n be_v 21._o and_o in_o the_o three_o principle_n it_o be_v a_o looking-glass_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n all_o lie_v therein_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o the_o potentiality_n of_o heaven_n &_o earth_n even_o the_o property_n of_o all_o creature_n for_o that_o looking-glass_n be_v as_o the_o firmament_n and_o the_o star_n and_o constellation_n 22._o it_o be_v such_o a_o crown_n as_o that_o and_o therein_o stand_v the_o outward_a man_n number_n the_o end_n and_o termination_n of_o his_o life_n withal_o prosperity_n and_o adversity_n if_o the_o outward_a life_n be_v rule_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o this_o world_n the_o six_o question_n what_o the_o ability_n or_o potentiality_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v 1._o it_o be_v apprehensible_a to_o we_o that_o whatsoever_o come_v out_o of_o the_o unsearchable_a profundity_n and_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v able_a to_o do_v all_o thing_n for_o it_o be_v its_o own_o substance_n and_o make_v itself_o 2._o and_o though_o indeed_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o twig_n or_o branch_n spring_v out_o of_o this_o tree_n yet_o it_o be_v now_o come_v into_o the_o be_v of_o a_o creature_n and_o be_v its_o own_o it_o be_v now_o a_o image_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o a_o child_n of_o the_o whole_a for_o when_o a_o child_n be_v generate_v or_o bear_v then_o be_v the_o mother_n and_o the_o child_n two_o they_o be_v two_o person_n but_o whilst_o it_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o seed_n in_o the_o mother_n than_o the_o seed_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o the_o mother_n have_v dominion_n over_o it_o for_o when_o the_o child_n be_v generate_v than_o it_o have_v its_o own_o life_n in_o itself_o and_o have_v the_o centre_n of_o nature_n in_o its_o own_o form_n
the_o devil_n and_o what_o propriety_n or_o part_n he_o have_v in_o it_o it_o go_v not_o naked_a unless_o it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n conduct_v it_o so_o that_o it_o have_v he_o for_o a_o shield_n or_o defence_n so_o that_o the_o devil_n suttlety_n can_v press_v or_o slip_v into_o it_o 25._o it_o make_v no_o wonder_n unless_o god_n spirit_n awaken_v or_o stir_v it_o up_o it_o give_v god_n the_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o attribute_v the_o might_n &_o power_n to_o he_o it_o do_v as_o a_o humble_a child_n and_o remain_v stand_v under_o the_o cross_n and_o let_v the_o devil_n bluster_v over_o it_o but_o itself_o sprout_v in_o humility_n and_o meekness_n through_o death_n into_o the_o eternal_a life_n and_o bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n in_o patience_n 26._o thus_o the_o devil_n can_v do_v nothing_o to_o that_o soul_n it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v dead_a to_o he_o he_o may_v with_o his_o turba_n in_o the_o earthly_a life_n with_o his_o helper_n and_o instrument_n wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n make_v a_o stir_n and_o racket_n but_o he_o have_v only_o scorn_v and_o derision_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n for_o it_o for_o he_o be_v a_o proud_a arrogant_a spirit_n and_o will_v fain_o be_v above_o god_n wonder_n but_o a_o humility_n can_v bind_v he_o or_o subdue_v he_o 27._o in_o such_o a_o manner_n may_v every_o man_n escape_v the_o false_a and_o wicked_a magus_n and_o also_o the_o necromancer_n for_o no_o power_n take_v hold_v on_o they_o where_o god_n dwell_v as_o christ_n 14._o in_o his_o death_n overcome_v the_o devil_n and_o death_n so_o also_o we_o in_o christ_n for_o the_o word_n that_o become_v man_n dwell_v in_o we_o and_o in_o that_o word_n we_o can_v rule_v over_o the_o devil_n and_o hell_n there_o be_v no_o hindrance_n 28._o thus_o we_o give_v you_o for_o a_o answer_n upon_o this_o question_n that_o the_o soul_n in_o its_o original_a be_v great_o powerful_a it_o be_v able_a and_o can_v do_v much_o but_o only_o in_o that_o principle_n into_o which_o it_o look_v or_o stand_v be_v its_o power_n and_o might_n for_o the_o devil_n can_v rule_v over_o god_n its_o might_n or_o power_n be_v not_o give_v to_o it_o as_o a_o king_n give_v may_v power_n authority_n or_o favour_n to_o any_o but_o it_o stand_v in_o natures-right_a therefore_o we_o be_v child_n of_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n and_o inherit_v his_o good_n in_o the_o omnipotency_n the_o seven_o question_n whether_o the_o soul_n be_v corporeal_a or_o not_o corporeal_a 1._o a_o thing_n which_o be_v from_o no_o beginning_n have_v also_o nothing_o that_o can_v give_v it_o any_o thing_n and_o if_o it_o be_v something_o it_o must_v seek_v the_o beginning_n in_o itself_o for_o every_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o the_o deep_a abyss_n of_o its_o substance_n but_o if_o it_o must_v make_v the_o substance_n to_o itself_o it_o can_v dwell_v in_o nothing_o that_o be_v strange_a to_o it_o but_o in_o itself_o in_o its_o own_o substance_n 2._o when_o god_n create_v the_o soul_n the_o holy_a spirit_n surround_v it_o with_o the_o tincture_n for_o it_o stand_v therein_o as_o to_o one_o part_n in_o itself_o it_o be_v raw_a or_o red_a as_o the_o glow_a of_o the_o fire_n be_v raw_a or_o red_a and_o be_v surround_v with_o the_o tincture_n 3._o as_o you_o understand_v that_o from_o the_o warmth_n the_o grow_a exi_v that_o be_v a_o drive_v of_o the_o tincture_n which_o drive_v the_o twig_n or_o branch_n out_o from_o the_o root_n viz._n out_o of_o the_o same_o fire_n be_v it_o cold_a or_o hot_a 4._o for_o the_o darkness_n have_v a_o cold_a fire_n so_o long_o till_o it_o reach_v the_o anguish_n and_o then_o it_o kindle_v itself_o in_o the_o hot_a as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o a_o herb_n if_o it_o come_v into_o another_o quality_n 5._o thus_o we_o give_v you_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o tincture_n be_v the_o right_a and_o true_a soul_n body_n for_o the_o soul_n be_v fire_n and_o the_o tincture_n go_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o fire_n which_o the_o fire_n draw_v again_o to_o itself_o and_o meekn_v or_o allay_v itself_o therewith_o so_o that_o the_o fierce_a wrathful_a source_n or_o quality_n extinguish_v 6._o thus_o the_o tincture_n stand_v in_o meekness_n and_o it_o have_v no_o substance_n or_o might_n or_o power_n in_o itself_o but_o the_o water_n be_v its_o might_n or_o power_n there_o come_v out_o of_o the_o meekness_n of_o the_o tincture_n water_n to_o be_v 7._o for_o the_o fire_n be_v desirous_a and_o where_o there_o be_v a_o desire_v of_o the_o original_a there_o be_v also_o a_o find_n of_o the_o original_a thus_o the_o fire_n find_v in_o the_o tincture_n water_n and_o turn_v that_o into_o sulphur_n according_a to_o power_n or_o virtue_n of_o all_o the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o nature_n that_o be_v a_o water_n of_o life_n 8._o for_o the_o tincture_n drive_v up_o in_o the_o water_n as_o a_o sprout_n and_o the_o fire_n in_o the_o abyss_n cause_v that_o 9_o thus_o be_v the_o water_n in_o the_o sulphur_n of_o the_o seven_o spirit_n change_v into_o the_o mystery_n and_o the_o great_a areanum_fw-la or_o secret_n lie_v therein_o whatsoever_o god_n and_o the_o eternity_n can_v do_v thus_o the_o mystery_n contain_v two_o form_n viz._n fire_n &_o water_n and_o wondelt_n change_v itself_o according_a to_o both_o viz._n according_a to_o the_o fire_n into_o red_a and_o according_a to_o the_o tincture_n into_o white_a so_o that_o a_o clear_a shine_a or_o glance_n exi_v from_o the_o fire_n so_o that_o the_o life_n see_v or_o know_v itself_o out_o of_o which_o reason_n and_o thought_n exist_v and_o the_o mind_n be_v in_o the_o wheel_n or_o orb_n of_o the_o anguish_n in_o the_o fire_n out_o of_o which_o the_o essence_n exist_v 10._o and_o thus_o you_o see_v what_o the_o blood_n be_v viz._n a_o house_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o the_o tincture_n be_v its_o body_n 11._o the_o right_a or_o true_a soul_n have_v no_o palpable_a body_n which_o be_v call_v soul_n but_o in_o the_o tincture_n grow_v the_o body_n in_o the_o sulphur_n out_o of_o sulphur_n that_o be_v every_o spirit_n of_o the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o nature_n desire_v substantiality_n which_o be_v together_o sulphur_n 12._o for_o sul_z be_v power_n and_o virtue_n out_o of_o the_o light_n and_o phur_n be_v power_n and_o virtue_n out_o of_o the_o four_o form_n of_o nature_n original_a as_o in_o the_o threefoldlife_n three_o book_n be_v mention_v at_o large_a 13._o thus_o the_o phur_n desire_v flesh_n that_o be_v a_o mixture_n out_o of_o fire_n and_o water_n and_o be_v in_o the_o tincture_n conceive_v and_o generate_v or_o bear_v 14._o and_o the_o tincture_n be_v the_o grow_v of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o fire_n be_v a_o original_a of_o the_o spirit_n through_o the_o tincture_n for_o in_o the_o tincture_n the_o soul_n spirit_n take_v its_o original_a which_o viz._n the_o right_a true_a image_n figure_v according_a to_o god_n image_n that_o be_v according_a to_o all_o the_o three_o principle_n for_o in_o the_o fire_n the_o soul_n be_v no_o similitude_n of_o god_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n 15._o for_o the_o first_o soul_n be_v together_o incorporate_v with_o the_o divine_a substantiality_n so_o that_o it_o have_v god_n body_n in_o the_o virgin_n of_o wisdom_n in_o which_o the_o tincture_n stand_v this_o be_v the_o angel_n image_n 16._o and_o i_o give_v you_o for_o answer_n that_o as_o to_o what_o concern_v the_o soul_n mere_o and_o pure_o by_o which_o we_o understand_v not_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v a_o fire-globe_n with_o a_o fire-eye_n and_o with_o a_o light-eye_n which_o turn_v back_o to_o back_n and_o one_o within_o another_o as_o wheel_n the_o wheel_n in_o ezekiel_n that_o can_v go_v on_o all_o side_n 16._o though_o babel_n have_v make_v clean_o another_o understanding_n upon_o it_o but_o a_o blind_a one_o without_o spirit_n 17._o but_o as_o to_o what_o concern_v its_o tincture_n out_o of_o the_o light_n which_o exi_v out_o of_o the_o fire_n and_o light_n it_o be_v a_o spirit_n where_o the_o original_a of_o the_o soul_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n in_o eternity_n can_v separate_v asunder_o note_n it_o be_v a_o eternal_a band_n and_o when_o the_o blood_n go_v away_o and_o the_o body_n die_v than_o this_o band_n continue_v in_o eternity_n 18._o the_o body_n as_o to_o what_o concern_v the_o soul_n pure_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o soul_n they_o be_v two_o substance_n for_o the_o body_n be_v the_o soul_n looking-glass_n and_o dwell_a house_n also_o its_o proper_a portion_n and_o it_o be_v also_o the_o cause_n that_o the_o mere_a pure_a soul_n alter_v or_o change_v the_o spirit_n viz._n according_a to_o the_o pleasure_n or_o long_v of_o the_o body_n or_o of_o the_o
true_a soul_n receive_v that_o same_o meek_a body_n for_o a_o sulphur_n than_o the_o soul_n burn_v in_o the_o love-fire_n and_o be_v whole_o go_v away_o out_o of_o the_o first_o fire-life_n 12._o it_o be_v now_o in_o god_n principle_n the_o first_o fierce_a wrathful_a fire_n can_v touch_v it_o in_o eternity_n for_o it_o have_v get_v another_o source_n or_o quality_n and_o be_v right_o and_o true_o new_a bear_v or_o regenerate_v and_o know_v no_o more_o of_o the_o first_o life_n for_o it_o be_v swallow_v up_o in_o the_o magia_n 13._o the_o turba_n remain_v in_o the_o earthly_a body_n and_o become_v that_o again_o which_o it_o be_v before_o the_o body_n be_v viz._n a_o nothing_o a_o magia_n wherein_o all_o its_o do_n matter_n or_o substance_n stand_v in_o figure_n as_o in_o a_o looking-glass_n but_o not_o corporeal_o but_o according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o eternity_n as_o we_o apprehend_v that_o all_o wonder_n before_o this_o world_n stand_v in_o a_o mystery_n as_o in_o the_o virgion_n of_o wisdom_n but_o without_o substance_n 14._o thus_o now_o we_o apprehend_v also_o here_o that_o that_o very_a mystery_n in_o its_o part_n become_v so_o manifest_v that_o it_o can_v in_o eternity_n be_v extinguish_v but_o remain_v eternal_o stand_v in_o the_o distinction_n and_o in_o the_o separation_n and_o be_v see_v in_o the_o magia_n in_o the_o separation_n or_o part_v after_o that_o manner_n as_o it_o have_v here_o form_v itself_o 15._o thus_o it_o be_v apprehensible_a to_o we_o what_o the_o separation_n or_o part_n be_v viz._n this_o the_o turba_n have_v find_v the_o limit_v of_o the_o substance_n for_o sickness_n to_o death_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o the_o turba_n have_v kindle_v itself_o and_o will_v break_v or_o destroy_v the_o substance_n it_o be_v at_o the_o limit_v and_o will_v cast_v away_o the_o introduce_v medium_fw-la or_o middle_n 16._o and_o this_o be_v also_o the_o cause_n that_o the_o body_n die_v the_o turba_n pass_v into_o itself_o into_o the_o fire_n and_o so_o the_o outward_a life_n extinguish_v for_o the_o life_n fire_n become_v withdraw_v from_o it_o and_o then_o it_o go_v into_o its_o aether_n and_o be_v at_o its_o limit_v 17._o and_o so_o now_o if_o the_o soul_n fire_n have_v not_o in_o its_o spirit_n god_n body_n nor_o in_o its_o will_n in_o its_o desire_n than_o it_o be_v a_o dark_a fire_n which_o burn_v in_o anguish_n and_o in_o great_a horror_n for_o it_o have_v only_o the_o first_o four_o form_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o anguish_n 18._o and_o if_o the_o will_n have_v nothing_o of_o the_o power_n or_o virtue_n of_o humility_n than_o there_o be_v no_o sink_v down_o or_o into_o itself_o through_o death_n into_o life_n but_o it_o be_v like_o a_o anxious_a furious_a wheel_n that_o will_v fain_o always_o go_v upward_o and_o yet_o it_o go_v downward_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o fire_n and_o yet_o it_o have_v no_o fire_n burn_v or_o flame_v 19_o for_o the_o turba_n be_v the_o very_a stern_a or_o strong_a austereness_n or_o astringency_n and_o bitterness_n where_o the_o bitterness_n always_o seek_v the_o fire_n and_o will_v strike_v it_o up_o and_o the_o harsh_a astringency_n hold_v it_o captive_n so_o that_o it_o be_v only_o a_o horrible_a anguish_n and_o go_v always_o in_o itself_o as_o a_o wheel_n and_o imagine_v yet_o it_o find_v nothing_o but_o itself_o it_o draw_v itself_o in_o itself_o and_o impregnate_v itself_o it_o devour_v itself_o and_o be_v its_o own_o substance_n 20._o it_o have_v no_o other_o substance_n but_o this_o viz._n what_o the_o soul_n spirit_n have_v make_v or_o act_v in_o the_o outward_a life_n as_o covetousness_n or_o highmindednesse_a curse_v swear_v scorn_v jeer_a disgrace_v or_o backbiting_a slander_v envy_n and_o hatred_n fierce_a wrath_n anger_n falshood_n or_o wickedness_n that_o be_v its_o food_n and_o the_o pastime_n of_o its_o exercise_n for_o the_o turba_n take_v its_o substance_n matter_n or_o do_n along_o with_o it_o in_o the_o will_n 13._o its_o work_n follow_v after_o it_o 21._o and_o though_o perhaps_o it_o have_v do_v or_o act_v somewhat_o that_o be_v good_a yet_o that_o be_v do_v but_o in_o a_o glymp_n for_o a_o show_n in_o appearance_n out_o of_o a_o vain_a glorious_a or_o hypocritical_a mind_n and_o so_o it_o stand_v afterward_o in_o a_o continual_a climb_v up_o it_o elevate_v itself_o continual_o it_o will_v always_o be_v above_o the_o meekness_n and_o yet_o apprehend_v or_o know_v it_o not_o nor_o see_v it_o it_o be_v a_o continual_a elevation_n above_o god_n and_o yet_o be_v but_o a_o eternal_a sink_v down_o it_o seek_v the_o ground_n or_o foundation_n and_o there_o be_v none_o and_o this_o be_v its_o life_n 22._o and_o if_o it_o have_v in_o its_o life-time_n lay_v hold_v of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v pure_a of_o the_o love_n as_o many_o that_o at_o last_o convert_v in_o the_o end_n those_o sink_v down_o thus_o in_o themselves_o through_o the_o anguish_n for_o the_o humble_a sparkle_n go_v down_o through_o death_n into_o life_n where_o indeed_o the_o soul_n source_n or_o quality_n and_o pain_n take_v its_o end_n but_o itself_o be_v a_o little_a branch_n or_o twig_n sprout_v into_o god_n 23._o now_o what_o purifying-fire_n or_o purgatory_n the_o soul_n have_v before_o it_o can_v enter_v into_o itself_o with_o the_o little_a sparkle_n can_v sufficient_o be_v write_v or_o express_v and_o how_o it_o be_v then_o detain_v and_o plague_v by_o the_o devil_n which_o the_o too_o wise_a and_o politic_a world_n will_v not_o believe_v it_o be_v so_o cunning_a and_o yet_o so_o blind_a it_o understand_v it_o not_o and_o yet_o continual_o hang_v or_o depend_v upon_o the_o letter_n oh_o that_o none_o may_v come_v into_o it_o we_o will_v willing_o be_v silent_a 24._o but_o we_o speak_v of_o no_o strange_a source_n quality_n or_o pain_n but_o only_o of_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o turba_n also_o of_o no_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n over_o the_o poor_a soul_n but_o only_o its_o terror_n and_o horrible_a apprehension_n of_o what_o be_v represent_v before_o it_o so_o that_o the_o soul_n imagination_n be_v sufficient_o terrify_v therein_o 25._o it_o be_v not_o by_o far_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n with_o the_o soul_n as_o babel_n teach_v say_v the_o devil_n beat_v and_o torment_v the_o soul_n that_o be_v very_o blind_o speak_v the_o devil_n be_v not_o at_o odds_o with_o his_o child_n they_o must_v all_o do_v his_o will_n the_o hellish_a anguish_n and_o horror_n be_v torment_n enough_o to_o they_o every_o one_o in_o his_o own_o abomination_n every_o one_o have_v his_o own_o hell_n there_o be_v nothing_o else_o that_o lay_v hold_v of_o it_o but_o its_o own_o venom_n or_o poison_n 26._o the_o four_o form_n of_o the_o original_a of_o nature_n be_v the_o common_a or_o universal_a source_n quality_n or_o torment_n which_o every_o one_o feel_v according_a to_o his_o turba_n one_o different_a from_o another_o as_o a_o covetous_a one_o have_v frost_n a_o angry_a one_o fire_n a_o envious_a one_o bitterness_n a_o proud_a stately_a one_o have_v fly_v up_o and_o yet_o eternal_a sink_v down_o and_o fall_v into_o the_o abyss_n a_o blasphemer_n swallow_v up_o into_o himself_o the_o turba_n of_o his_o belch_v forth_o abomination_n a_o false_a or_o wicked_a deceitful_a heart_n have_v the_o four_o form_n viz._n the_o great_a anguish_n 27._o for_o the_o turba_n stand_v in_o the_o fire_n where_o circle_n or_o globe_n viz._n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o false_a or_o evil_a speak_n lie_v and_o untruth_n or_o unfaithfulness_n be_v a_o horror_n or_o abomination_n and_o gnaw_v a_o curse_v or_o anathema_n in_o itself_o and_o so_o on_o 28._o a_o potentate_n who_o have_v oppress_v the_o poor_a and_o miserable_a and_o consume_v his_o sweat_n or_o labour_n in_o pride_n he_o ride_v in_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o miserable_a in_o the_o full_a height_n of_o the_o fire_n for_o the_o necessity_n and_o distress_n of_o the_o miserable_a stick_n all_o in_o he_o 29._o he_o have_v no_o rest_n his_o pride_n climb_v up_o continual_o he_o do_v in_o his_o condition_n there_o as_o he_o do_v here_o he_o seek_v continual_o and_o yet_o want_v all_o thing_n that_o which_o he_o have_v too_o much_o of_o that_o he_o have_v now_o too_o little_a of_o he_o devour_v himself_o continual_o for_o substance_n to_o feed_v on_o and_o yet_o have_v none_o for_o he_o be_v magical_a 30._o he_o have_v lose_v his_o right_a true_a image_n and_o have_v as_o it_o be_v the_o image_n of_o a_o proud_a prance_a horse_n or_o of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v here_o be_v conversant_a about_o that_o which_o he_o take_v with_o he_o in_o his_o will_n that_o be_v his_o image_n 21._o where_o his_o heart_n be_v there_o be_v his_o treasure_n also_o and_o
that_o in_o its_o eternity_n but_o sir_n smell_v and_o consider_v what_o the_o last_o judgement_n bring_v with_o it_o wherein_o all_o shall_v pass_v through_o the_o fire_n when_o the_o floar_n shall_v be_v purge_v 12._o and_o every_o one_o go_v into_o his_o own_o place_n at_o which_o the_o very_a devil_n do_v tremble_v the_o nineteen_o question_n how_o the_o soul_n be_v mortal_a or_o how_o it_o be_v immortal_a 1._o a_o thing_n which_o have_v a_o eternal_a beginning_n have_v also_o a_o eternal_a end_n as_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o soul_n have_v 2._o but_o as_o to_o what_o concern_v the_o image_n which_o god_n create_v which_o have_v a_o temporal_a beginning_n that_o be_v generate_v out_o of_o the_o eternal_a and_o will_v be_v set_v in_o the_o eternal_a substance_n without_o source_n quality_n or_o pain_n 3._o and_o where_o there_o be_v no_o source_n quality_n or_o pain_n there_o be_v no_o death_n and_o though_o there_o be_v source_n quality_n or_o pain_n as_o in_o heaven_n there_o be_v source_n quality_n or_o pain_n yet_o it_o be_v in_o one_o will_v or_o in_o harmony_n and_o that_o be_v ground_v or_o found_v in_o the_o eternity_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o find_v it_o and_o so_o nothing_o can_v come_v into_o it_o 4._o and_o now_o where_o there_o be_v one_o will_v as_o in_o god_n who_o be_v all_o in_o all_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o that_o can_v find_v the_o will_n there_o be_v no_o turba_n there_o for_o the_o will_n desire_v nothing_o else_o but_o only_o itself_o and_o its_o twig_n or_o branch_n which_o all_o stand_n in_o one_o tree_n in_o one_o essence_n the_o tree_n be_v its_o own_o beginning_n and_o its_o own_o end_n 5._o the_o soul_n be_v proceed_v out_o of_o god_n mouth_n and_o go_v in_o the_o die_a of_o the_o body_n again_o into_o god_n be_v mouth_n it_o be_v in_o the_o word_n the_o substance_n and_o in_o the_o will_n the_o deed._n 6._o who_o will_v now_o judge_v or_o condemn_v that_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v in_o his_o own_o body_n as_o the_o soul_n be_v which_o be_v in_o the_o body_n of_o god_n it_o be_v hide_v from_o all_o evil_a in_o god_n who_o will_v find_v it_o none_o but_o god_n spirit_n and_o one_o soul_n another_o and_o the_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n of_o angel_n 7._o but_o the_o wicked_a soul_n have_v lose_v its_o image_n in_o the_o limit_v for_o it_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o limit_v and_o the_o limit_v be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o image_n the_o turba_n destroy_v the_o first_o image_n and_o draw_v the_o will_n substance_n or_o act_n to_o it_o for_o a_o image_n and_o these_o be_v also_o immortal_a for_o the_o eternal_a nature_n die_v not_o for_o it_o be_v from_o no_o beginning_n 8._o if_o the_o eternal_a nature_n in_o the_o anger-fire_n shall_v die_v than_o also_o god_n be_v majesty_n will_v extinguish_v and_o of_o a_o eternal_a something_o there_o will_v be_v a_o eternal_a nothing_o and_o that_o can_v be_v that_o which_o be_v from_o eternity_n continue_v eternal_o 9_o the_o false_a or_o wicked_a soul_n can_v awaken_v no_o other_o source_n or_o quality_n but_o only_o that_o which_o have_v stand_v from_o eternity_n in_o the_o anger-eye_n viz._n in_o the_o centre_n of_o nature_n 10._o all_o have_v be_v from_o eternity_n but_o essential_o in_o the_o essence_n not_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o essence_n not_o substantial_a spirit_n but_o figure_v spirit_n without_o corporise_v have_v be_v from_o eternity_n as_o in_o a_o magia_n where_o one_o have_v swallow_v up_o the_o other_o in_o the_o magia_n 11._o and_o out_o of_o both_o the_o third_z be_v come_v to_o be_v according_a to_o the_o form_n or_o manner_n of_o they_o both_o there_o have_v be_v a_o stir_v up_o from_o eternity_n and_o a_o figure_a substance_n and_o the_o creation_n have_v set_v all_o in_o wonder_n wonder_n so_o that_o in_o the_o eternal_a magia_n now_o and_o in_o eternity_n all_o stand_v in_o wonder_n 12._o if_o the_o wicked_a soul_n have_v introduce_v no_o substance_n in_o their_o will_n than_o there_o have_v be_v no_o woe_n in_o they_o there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o feeling_n or_o perception_n of_o pain_n but_o magia_n but_o the_o substance_n be_v a_o image_n and_o be_v in_o the_o turba_n and_o so_o there_o be_v a_o perceptible_a source_n quality_n or_o pain_n 13._o it_o be_v a_o die_a and_o yet_o no_o die_n but_o a_o will_n of_o die_v viz._n a_o anguish_n in_o that_o same_o substance_n or_o thing_n which_o be_v introduce_v into_o the_o will_n 14._o and_o that_o cause_v that_o all_o thing_n pant_v after_o god_n and_o yet_o can_v reach_v he_o and_o that_o make_v anguish_n and_o sorrow_n for_o the_o introduce_v evil_a note_n the_o soul_n continual_o think_v if_o thou_o have_v not_o do_v this_o or_o that_o thou_o may_v have_v attain_v the_o salvation_n of_o god_n and_o so_o the_o evil_a substance_n matter_n or_o thing_n do_v or_o commit_v make_v the_o eternal_a despair_n 15._o therefore_o we_o say_v that_o no_o soul_n die_v be_v it_o in_o god_n or_o in_o hell_n and_o its_o substance_n or_o do_n remain_v stand_v eternal_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n wonder_n the_o twenty_o question_n how_o the_o soul_n come_v or_o return_v to_o god_n again_o 1._o this_o be_v clear_o enough_o explain_v already_o that_o it_o have_v be_v speak_v out_o from_o god_n mouth_n and_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n create_v into_o the_o image_n of_o god_n 2._o therefore_o if_o it_o continue_v so_o then_o when_o it_o pass_v out_o of_o the_o earthly_a life_n it_o be_v clear_o in_o god_n mouth_n for_o it_o be_v in_o god_n body_n no_o source_n quality_n or_o pain_n touch_v it_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o question_n whither_o the_o soul_n go_v when_o it_o depart_v from_o the_o body_n be_v it_o save_v or_o not_o save_v 1._o he_o that_o understand_v right_o the_o three_o principle_n have_v here_o no_o further_a question_n for_o the_o soul_n go_v not_o out_o at_o the_o mouth_n for_o it_o go_v not_o in_o at_o the_o mouth_n but_o it_o pass_v only_o out_o of_o the_o earthly_a life_n the_o turba_n break_v off_o the_o earthly_a life_n and_o then_o the_o soul_n remain_v stand_v in_o its_o principle_n 2._o for_o the_o body_n do_v not_o lay_v hold_n of_o it_o no_o wood_n nor_o stone_n lay_v hold_v of_o it_o it_o be_v thin_a than_o the_o air_n and_o if_o it_o have_v god_n body_n than_o it_o go_v direct_o as_o a_o conqueror_n quite_o through_o the_o turba_n viz._n through_o the_o anger_n of_o god_n and_o quite_o through_o death_n and_o when_o it_o be_v through_o than_o it_o be_v in_o god_n body_n 3._o it_o continue_v with_o its_o here-made-wonder_n and_o substance_n or_o matter_n and_o do_n it_o seek_v god_n majesty_n and_o the_o angel_n face_n to_o face_n 4._o where_o it_o be_v it_o be_v in_o the_o unsearchable_a world_n where_o there_o be_v no_o end_n nor_o limit_v whither_o can_v it_o then_o go_v away_o from_o thence_o 37._o where_o the_o carcase_n be_v thither_o the_o eagle_n gather_v together_o it_o be_v in_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n with_o christ_n its_o lord_n 5._o and_o though_o it_o shall_v go_v a_o thousand_o miles_n yet_o it_o will_v be_v in_o that_o place_n where_o it_o be_v when_o it_o go_v forth_o for_o in_o god_n there_o be_v no_o limit_v near_a and_o afar_o off_o be_v all_o one_o in_o he_o 6._o it_o be_v as_o swift_a as_o the_o thought_n of_o a_o man_n it_o be_v magical_a it_o dwell_v in_o its_o life_n wonder_n they_o be_v its_o house_n house_n or_o mansion_n or_o habitation_n 7._o the_o substantiality_n external_o without_o it_o be_v paradise_n a_o spring_a or_o sprout_v blossom_a and_o grow_v of_o all_o bright_a fair_a heavenly_a fruit_n as_o we_o have_v all_o sort_n of_o fruit_n in_o this_o world_n which_o we_o feed_v on_o in_o a_o earthly_a manner_n so_o also_o there_o be_v all_o manner_n of_o fruit_n in_o paradise_n which_o the_o soul_n may_v eat_v of_o they_o be_v in_o colour_n and_o virtue_n and_o power_n as_o also_o in_o substance_n not_o as_o a_o thought_n though_o they_o be_v as_o thin_a and_o subtle_a or_o pure_a as_o a_o thought_n yet_o substantial_a comprehensible_a to_o the_o soul_n palpable_a to_o be_v feel_v and_o handle_v full_a of_o virtue_n and_o power_n also_o jucy_a or_o full_a of_o the_o sap_n of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n all_o from_o the_o heavenly_a substantiality_n 8._o the_o heavenly_a body_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v from_o the_o pure_a element_n out_o of_o which_o the_o four_o element_n be_v generate_v and_o that_o give_v or_o afford_v flesh_n and_o the_o tincture_n blood_n the_o heavenly_a man_n be_v or_o consist_v of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o the_o paradise_n be_v the_o power_n or_o virtue_n of_o the_o substantiality_n it_o be_v heavenly_a earth_n not_o comprehensible_a
to_o our_o outward_a reason_n 9_o but_o we_o will_v now_o once_o more_o teach_v another_o a._n b._n c._n all_o have_v not_o christ_n flesh_n on_o they_o in_o this_o world_n hide_v in_o the_o old_a adam_n indeed_o of_o very_a many_o scarce_a one_o only_o the_o regenerate_v who_o be_v go_v forth_o from_o their_o own_o will_n into_o god_n will_n in_o who_o the_o noble_a and_o precious_a 6._o grain_n of_o mustard_n seed_n be_v sow_v there_o a_o tree_n be_v spring_v up_o and_o grow_v 10._o most_o soul_n go_v from_o the_o body_n without_o christ_n body_n but_o they_o hang_v by_o a_o thread_n and_o be_v in_o their_o faith_n at_o last_o enter_v into_o the_o will_n which_o soul_n be_v indeed_o in_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o image_n but_o not_o in_o the_o flesh_n 11._o they_o wait_v for_o the_o last_o judgement_n day_n wherein_o the_o image_n viz._n the_o body_n will_v go_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o grave_a out_o of_o the_o first_o image_n for_o god_n will_v awaken_v or_o raise_v it_o up_o through_o christ_n voice_n even_o that_o image_n which_o adam_n have_v in_o his_o innocency_n which_o be_v sprout_v or_o grow_v with_o or_o by_o christ_n blood_n 12._o but_o the_o earthly_a body_n shall_v not_o touch_v it_o that_o must_v also_o in_o the_o turba_n come_v before_o the_o judgement_n but_o after_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judgement_n the_o turba_n swallow_v it_o up_o and_o the_o wonder_n only_o remain_v stand_v 13._o understand_v we_o aright_o thus_o those_o soul_n which_o must_v thus_o wait_v for_o their_o body_n at_o the_o last_o judgement_n day_n they_o continue_v with_o their_o body_n in_o the_o still_a rest_n without_o feel_v any_o pain_n till_o the_o last_o judgement_n day_n but_o in_o another_o principle_n 14._o they_o have_v in_o the_o earth_n no_o darkness_n also_o no_o majesty_n but_o they_o be_v in_o the_o one_o only_a still-liberty_n in_o rest_n without_o pain_n without_o touch_v of_o the_o body_n 15._o but_o they_o see_v their_o they_o wonder_n yet_o they_o perform_v nothing_o in_o they_o for_o they_o wait_v upon_o god_n and_o be_v in_o humility_n for_o they_o be_v sink_v down_o through_o death_n and_o be_v in_o another_o world_n but_o there_o be_v yet_o a_o cliff_n or_o gulf_n between_o they_o and_o the_o holy_a soul_n in_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n yet_o not_o a_o principle_n for_o they_o be_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o principle_n 16._o but_o a_o spirit_n without_o a_o body_n have_v not_o that_o may_v or_o power_n as_o that_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o the_o body_n therefore_o they_o be_v in_o the_o rest_n they_o be_v under_o god_n altar_n 17._o when_o the_o last_o judgement_n day_n come_v it_o will_v then_o go_v forth_o and_o eat_v of_o god_n bread_n and_o put_v on_o god_n body_n as_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o revelation_n of_o john_n where_o the_o soul_n 11._o in_o white_a garment_n under_o the_o altar_n say_v lord_n when_o aveng_a thou_o our_o blood_n and_o it_o be_v say_v to_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v rest_v a_o little_a while_n till_o their_o brethren_n come_v to_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v slay_v for_o the_o witness_n of_o jesus_n 18._o but_o the_o wicked_a soul_n have_v another_o place_n viz._n in_o the_o most_o innermost_a which_o also_o be_v the_o most_o outermost_a in_o the_o darkness_n those_o soul_n dare_v go_v no_o whither_o they_o remain_v direct_o with_o the_o body_n in_o their_o substance_n or_o do_n but_o not_o in_o this_o world_n also_o they_o do_v not_o touch_v the_o earth_n 19_o they_o be_v indeed_o powerful_a over_o the_o earth_n they_o can_v open_v it_o without_o substance_n or_o labour_n and_o feel_v but_o the_o outward_a principle_n they_o have_v not_o they_o be_v not_o powerful_a enough_o over_o the_o outward_a spirit_n and_o yet_o it_o can_v a_o long_a time_n play_v juggle_a trick_n in_o the_o spirit_n sidereal_a spirit_n 20._o as_o many_o of_o they_o appear_v again_o in_o the_o starry_a spirit_n and_o seek_v rest_n or_o abstinence_n also_o cause_v much_o terror_n and_o hurliburly_n in_o house_n all_o which_o they_o do_v through_o the_o starry_a spirit_n till_o that_o be_v consume_v and_o then_o its_o pomp_n lie_v in_o the_o darkness_n and_o expect_v the_o last_o judgement_n 21._o our_o babel_n say_v it_o be_v the_o devil_n which_o go_v about_o so_o in_o the_o form_n or_o shape_n of_o the_o soul_n indeed_o there_o be_v right_a devil_n enough_o with_o a_o damn_a soul_n but_o it_o be_v not_o a_o very_a devil_n such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v in_o the_o abyss_n and_o very_o ready_o plague_v the_o soul_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o body_n in_o the_o abyss_n of_o the_o soul_n 22._o though_o indeed_o it_o be_v not_o difficult_a for_o he_o to_o put_v on_o a_o deceiver_n hypocritical_a garment_n he_o can_v easy_o put_v on_o a_o outward_a garment_n to_o seduce_v and_o to_o terrify_v man._n 23._o but_o this_o we_o must_v complain_v against_o babel_n that_o she_o be_v so_o altogether_o blind_a and_o have_v so_o little_a knowledge_n of_o god_n she_o have_v cast_v away_o the_o true_a magia_n and_o philosophy_n and_o take_v in_o the_o antichrist_n now_o she_o want_v wit_n ingenuity_n or_o understanding_n she_o have_v art_n but_o only_a wit_n and_o understanding_n fail_v she_o and_o break_v she_o have_v break_v the_o looking-glass_n and_o see_v with_o spectacle_n 24._o what_o shall_v a_o man_n say_v the_o world_n be_v blindfold_a man_n draw_v it_o into_o a_o snare_n and_o lead_v it_o captive_a and_o it_o see_v it_o not_o and_o it_o be_v indeed_o free_a if_o it_o do_v but_o see_v it_o there_o be_v wicked_a knavish_a cunning_n in_o the_o string_n man_n bind_v it_o with_o thou_o will_v soon_o become_v see_v it_o be_v bright_a day_n only_o 5._o awake_v thou_o keeper_n of_o israel_n 25._o thus_o belove_a friend_n be_v inform_v of_o this_o that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n of_o place_n and_o condition_n among_o soul_n all_o according_a to_o that_o into_o which_o a_o soul_n be_v enter_v be_v it_o holy_a and_o bear_v anew_o or_o regenerate_v then_o it_o have_v a_o body_n which_o wait_v only_o for_o the_o wonder_n of_o the_o body_n at_o the_o last_o judgement_n day_n it_o have_v comprise_v they_o clear_o already_o in_o the_o will_n but_o they_o shall_v stand_v before_o the_o judgement_n at_o the_o last_o day_n all_o soul_n the_o good_a and_o the_o evil_a every_o one_o shall_v receive_v its_o sentence_n and_o wage_n 26._o the_o holy_a shall_v be_v set_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o they_o may_v see_v and_o taste_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o source_n and_o torment_n 27._o if_o any_o shall_v conceit_v a_o several_a place_n or_o space_n where_o they_o shall_v sit_v one_o among_o another_o that_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o magia_n every_o one_o be_v in_o its_o own_o land_n soil_n or_o country_n and_o not_o bind_v to_o the_o place_n of_o the_o body_n but_o it_o may_v be_v where_o it_o will_v and_o and_o then_o wherever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v there_o either_o in_o god_n or_o in_o the_o darkness_n 28._o god_n be_v every_o where_o and_o the_o darkness_n be_v also_o every_o where_o the_o angel_n be_v also_o every_o whery_z every_o one_o in_o his_o own_o principle_n and_o in_o his_o own_o source_n or_o quality_n 29._o the_o conceit_n of_o outward_a reason_n without_o apprehension_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o principle_n be_v a_o fight_v with_o a_o shadow_n in_o a_o looking-glass_n if_o i_o do_v ask_v a_o thousand_o time_n and_o shall_v be_v always_o answer_v something_o concern_v god_n if_o i_o be_v but_o still_o in_o flesh_n and_o blood_n i_o shall_v look_v upon_o it_o as_o babel_n do_v which_o suppose_v the_o soul_n go_v up_o into_o a_o heaven_n above_o the_o star_n i_o know_v nothing_o yet_o of_o that_o heaven_n and_o i_o can_v well_o forbear_v be_v there_o 30._o it_o be_v indeed_o above_o and_o there_o be_v the_o angelical_a prince-throne_n but_o this_o globe_n eye_n of_o this_o aether_n be_v our_o principality_n and_o our_o kingdom_n 31._o indeed_o it_o be_v all_o one_o with_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o upper_a heaven_n and_o with_o they_o that_o be_v in_o we_o but_o our_o creation_n and_o substance_n or_o do_n be_v in_o our_o aether_n a_o soul_n may_v well_o go_v thither_o if_o it_o desire_v it_o will_v be_v very_o love_o receive_v and_o entertain_v by_o god_n angel_n 32._o for_o there_o be_v the_o same_o substance_n of_o god_n with_o they_o as_o with_o we_o and_o this_o only_o be_v the_o difference_n that_o they_o have_v angelical_a work_n among_o they_o whole_o pure_a without_o spot_n or_o blemish_v and_o we_o have_v the_o great_a wonder_n therefore_o they_o delight_v also_o to_o be_v with_o we_o and_o they_o be_v beside_o that_o 14._o our_o minister_a servant_n during_o the_o life_n of_o
with_o stranger_n for_o in_o heaven_n we_o be_v all_o brethren_n they_o have_v no_o great_a care_n about_o their_o child_n and_o parent_n then_o about_o other_o unless_o they_o work_v and_o act_n in_o god_n and_o then_o indeed_o their_o service_n of_o god_n be_v much_o more_o full_a of_o joy_n to_o they_o but_o they_o enter_v not_o into_o their_o turba_n 43._o for_o after_o the_o last_o judgement_n day_n the_o honest_a parent_n will_v know_v nothing_o of_o their_o child_n that_o be_v in_o hell_n and_o so_o it_o be_v sufficient_o apprehensible_a to_o we_o that_o they_o now_o take_v no_o care_n about_o their_o wicked_a matter_n or_o do_n the_o seven_o and_o twenty_o question_n whether_o the_o soul_n in_o death_n know_v or_o understand_v this_o or_o that_o business_n and_o art_n in_o which_o they_o be_v skill_v when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o body_n 1._o this_o be_v as_o in_o the_o follow_a question_n all_o their_o substance_n or_o matter_n and_o do_n appear_v to_o they_o in_o their_o will_n or_o mind_n in_o a_o magical_a kind_n or_o manner_n they_o see_v it_o but_o the_o figure_n or_o frame_n of_o they_o will_v first_o be_v give_v to_o they_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o restoration_n that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o look_v upon_o they_o aright_o for_o they_o must_v first_o be_v try_v by_o the_o fire_n and_o that_o which_o be_v false_a or_o wicked_a must_v remain_v with_o its_o turba_n in_o the_o fire_n according_a to_o the_o purport_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n 2._o but_o if_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v art_n whether_o they_o know_v they_o sure_o they_o know_v all_o art_n though_o never_o so_o deep_o found_v but_o they_o dare_v not_o awaken_v or_o stir_v they_o up_o that_o they_o shall_v appear_v in_o their_o spirit_n for_o art_n be_v generate_v in_o the_o centre_n of_o nature_n out_o of_o the_o essence_n wherein_o the_o wonder_n stand_v which_o they_o have_v seek_v in_o this_o world_n so_o much_o as_o have_v be_v open_v to_o they_o in_o the_o mystery_n 3._o a_o soul_n without_o god_n body_n go_v not_o into_o the_o mystery_n for_o art_n it_o stand_v still_o and_o quiet_a in_o its_o rest_n it_o fear_v the_o turba_n it_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n 4._o but_o the_o high_o enlighten_v soul_n which_o carry_v heavenly_a substantiality_n in_o their_o spirit_n they_o have_v the_o skill_n and_o knowledge_n of_o heavenly_a matter_n and_o of_o all_o whatsoever_o lie_v in_o the_o mystery_n especial_o those_o which_o have_v be_v conversant_a in_o the_o mystery_n here_o the_o other_o do_v not_o use_v to_o search_v into_o the_o mystery_n 5._o for_o every_o one_o continue_v in_o his_o own_o call_v and_o employment_n which_o he_o have_v here_o love_v and_o delight_v in_o though_o indeed_o there_o be_v no_o such_o work_n or_o labour_n there_o yet_o they_o have_v joy_n in_o it_o for_o in_o heaven_n there_o be_v a_o simple_a humble_a child_n life_n 6._o why_o shall_v man_n there_o inquire_v after_o art_n and_o science_n the_o whole_a mystery_n stand_v open_a god_n fill_v all_o in_o all_o there_o be_v mere_a wonder_n they_o live_v all_o in_o wonder_n and_o be_v all_o the_o art_n of_o god_n they_o have_v all_o great_a skill_n and_o knowledge_n but_o in_o a_o paradisical_a simple_a child_n life_n the_o eight_o and_o twenty_o question_n whether_o they_o have_v any_o more_o skill_n or_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a angelical_a and_o earthly_a thing_n and_o also_o of_o devilish_a and_o can_v have_v more_o certain_a experience_n and_o knowledge_n of_o they_o then_o they_o have_v in_o the_o body_n 1._o concern_v divine_a and_o angelical_a skill_n and_o knowledge_n they_o have_v certain_o much_o more_o for_o they_o be_v in_o the_o principle_n of_o god_n and_o the_o son_n see_v very_o well_o what_o the_o father_n do_v in_o his_o house_n so_o also_o the_o soul_n see_v what_o be_v in_o heaven_n 2._o their_o skill_n and_o knowledge_n be_v very_o various_a for_o the_o high_a skill_n and_o knowledge_n be_v apprehend_v in_o the_o majesty_n and_o there_o must_v most_o soul_n wait_v till_o the_o last_o judgement_n day_n when_o they_o shall_v get_v their_o new_a body_n 3._o but_o the_o high_o enlighten_v how_o soul_n that_o be_v in_o god_n body_n and_o power_n they_o have_v surpass_v overflow_a skill_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o angel_n for_o they_o be_v in_o the_o wonder_n of_o god_n till_o their_o own_o wonder_n shall_v be_v present_v also_o to_o they_o 4._o the_o soul_n without_o a_o body_n be_v in_o heaven_n in_o god_n as_o it_o be_v magical_o they_o awaken_v or_o stir_v up_o no_o wonder_n but_o be_v under_o god_n altar_n and_o wait_v for_o the_o wonder_n at_o 7._o the_o day_n of_o appear_v 5._o they_o take_v no_o care_n about_o devilish_a thing_n for_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o angel_n to_o strive_v with_o the_o devil_n and_o defend_v man_n no_o soul_n imagine_v into_o hell_n it_o be_v enmity_n to_o they_o the_o nine_o and_o twenty_o question_n what_o the_o soul_n rest_v awaken_n and_o clarification_n be_v 1._o this_o be_v also_o clear_o enough_o explain_v its_o rest_n be_v without_o work_v substance_n in_o the_o stillness_n where_o they_o be_v in_o god_n hand_n and_o no_o source_n or_o pain_n touch_v they_o they_o have_v no_o feel_n of_o any_o pain_n but_o it_o be_v as_o one_o that_o lie_v in_o a_o sweet_a sleep_n and_o rest_v quiet_o 2._o their_o glorification_n clarification_n during_o this_o time_n be_v when_o they_o think_v and_o consider_v of_o the_o joy_n to_o come_v than_o the_o spirit_n enter_v into_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n whence_o they_o have_v joy_n and_o clarity_n or_o glory_n and_o so_o during_o all_o the_o time_n they_o 7._o trim_v their_o lamp_n that_o they_o may_v be_v ready_a in_o their_o new_a body_n to_o be_v receive_v by_o their_o bridegroom_n 3._o there_o be_v a_o very_a sweet_a paradisical_a joy_n in_o they_o but_o paradise_n be_v not_o stir_v in_o they_o with_o full_a perfection_n for_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o new_a body_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n the_o first_o body_n which_o god_n create_v which_o christ_n have_v redeem_v by_o his_o death_n that_o will_v bring_v the_o wonder_n and_o enter_v again_o into_o paradise_n and_o be_v surround_v or_o clothe_v with_o god_n majesty_n and_o then_o be_v 3._o the_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n with_o men._n the_o thirty_o question_n what_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o live_n and_o dead_v resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o soul_n be_v 1._o concern_v this_o say_v christ_n there_o shall_v be_v great_a difference_n wherefore_o we_o remit_v you_o to_o the_o scripture_n for_o it_o shall_v all_o be_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n 2._o but_o see_v this_o be_v unsearchable_a and_o unapprehensible_a to_o man_n reason_n therefore_o i_o know_v not_o how_o to_o answer_v you_o more_o than_o the_o scripture_n say_v but_o see_v you_o long_o and_o desire_v to_o know_v these_o thing_n therefore_o you_o be_v also_o in_o your_o seek_n the_o find_n and_o i_o be_o only_o the_o instrument_n 3._o and_o though_o it_o be_v give_v and_o open_v to_o i_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o from_o my_o own_o understanding_n and_o knowledge_n but_o the_o knowledge_n stand_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o which_o this_o hand_n call_v itself_o twofold_n and_o say_v we_o for_o it_o speak_v from_o two_o person_n and_o two_o person_n say_v not_o i_o but_o we_o and_o speak_v of_o two_o as_o a_o lord_n that_o speak_v of_o his_o person_n and_o of_o his_o dominion_n 4._o and_o so_o god_n child_n and_o servant_n shall_v not_o say_v the_o knowledge_n be_v i_o the_o understanding_n be_v i_o but_o give_v the_o honour_n and_o glory_n to_o god_n and_o in_o their_o open_n or_o manifest_v the_o god_n wonder_n of_o god_n shall_v speak_v of_o two_o viz._n of_o the_o giver_n and_o of_o the_o receiver_n 5._o neither_o shall_v any_o understand_v our_o write_n so_o as_o if_o the_o hand_n do_v boast_v or_o glory_n of_o itself_o according_a to_o the_o authority_n and_o worthiness_n of_o man_n though_o indeed_o in_o christ_n we_o be_v worthy_a but_o according_a to_o the_o outward_a man_n we_o will_v have_v no_o boast_v or_o praise_n and_o honour_n for_o the_o praise_n be_v go_n 6._o we_o be_v child_n of_o the_o father_n and_o shall_v do_v that_o which_o he_o will_v have_v we_o do_v and_o not_o 28._o hide_v or_o bury_v in_o the_o earth_n the_o talon_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o for_o the_o father_n will_v require_v it_o of_o we_o with_o increase_n and_o if_o nothing_o be_v increase_v with_o it_o than_o he_o take_v it_o again_o from_o he_o to_o who_o he_o have_v give_v it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o he_o that_o have_v gain_v much_o which_o will_v be_v a_o miserable_a take_n away_o from_o i_o to_o
find_v that_o the_o turba_n be_v still_o therein_o so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o seek_v more_o for_o the_o turba_n be_v find_v at_o the_o limit_v and_o work_v only_o to_o the_o fire_n and_o to_o the_o judgement_n 19_o thus_o the_o end_n of_o this_o world_n be_v as_o the_o dregs_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o work_v in_o the_o turba_n to_o the_o blow_v up_o of_o the_o fire_n and_o to_o the_o judgement_n for_o the_o outward_a world_n be_v become_v generate_v out_o of_o the_o turba_n and_o have_v take_v its_o beginning_n in_o the_o turba_n and_o the_o turba_n be_v its_o proper_a own_o thus_o the_o beginning_n seek_v the_o end_n again_o in_o the_o fierce_a wrath._n 20._o and_o as_o this_o world_n be_v become_v corporeal_a in_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n so_o also_o will_v the_o beginning_n at_o the_o end_n have_v the_o spirit_n again_o in_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n for_o the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n be_v all_o one_o therefore_o you_o see_v very_o well_o that_o in_o the_o beginning_n the_o turba_n swallow_v up_o adam_n and_o bring_v he_o into_o anger_n and_o murder_v abel_n 21._o therefore_o you_o elect_v desire_v none_o of_o you_o to_o live_v to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o end_n after_o enoch_n take_v up_o but_o consider_v that_o when_o enoch_n preach_v the_o sun_n shine_v then_o go_v out_o of_o babel_n it_o be_v a_o golden_a time_n but_o your_o turba_n cause_v that_o enoch_n shall_v be_v take_v up_o 22._o enoch_n be_v not_o fly_v away_o out_o of_o this_o world_n he_o be_v pass_v into_o the_o mystery_n in_o the_o wonder_n for_o he_o be_v god_n preacher_n and_o after_o that_o the_o turba_n have_v overcome_v the_o world_n then_o must_v he_o be_v silent_a till_o the_o six_o seal_n have_v end_v their_o wonder_n and_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o turba_n pour_v forth_o their_o viol_n and_o then_o be_v the_o wonder_n of_o the_o anger_n finish_v 23._o then_o come_v enoch_n again_o out_o of_o the_o mystery_n and_o go_v into_o the_o mystery_n and_o tell_v what_o have_v be_v do_v and_o reprove_v the_o world_n because_o of_o the_o turba_n hecause_fw-mi they_o have_v let_v the_o abomination_n come_v into_o they_o and_o have_v not_o withstand_v it_o 24._o and_o after_o the_o world_n become_v fat_a and_o wanton_a in_o the_o golden_a year_n and_o seek_v sodom_n and_o gommorrah_n again_o then_o will_v also_o their_o turba_n be_v fat_a and_o wanton_a and_o seek_v the_o fierce_a wrath_n and_o the_o limit_v and_o the_o golden_a time_n come_v to_o a_o end_n and_o will_v be_v swallow_v up_o in_o the_o turba_n and_o then_o methuselah_n the_o old_a man_n die_v and_o sudden_o come_v the_o sin_n deluge_n in_o the_o fire_n think_v of_o it_o it_o be_v a_o earnest_a severe_a thing_n 25._o we_o say_v not_o that_o you_o shall_v feel_v enoch_n with_o your_o hand_n no_o enoch_n preach_v not_o from_o the_o earthly_a life_n spirit_n but_o from_o that_o which_o be_v a_o prophet_n which_o introduce_v the_o outward_a man_n into_o the_o principle_n thus_o you_o shall_v not_o touch_v the_o outward_a enoch_n but_o hear_v the_o prophet_n which_o speak_v out_o of_o enoch_n out_o of_o the_o mystery_n 26._o babel_n hold_v it_o in_o derision_n and_o despise_v enoch_n for_o a_o time_n then_o enoch_n call_v noah_n but_o they_o account_v he_o a_o old_a fool_n for_o preach_v of_o the_o downfall_n of_o babel_n 27._o and_o noah_n pass_v into_o the_o other_o world_n through_o the_o water_n and_o call_v to_o moses_n with_o his_o wonder_n and_o he_o come_v for_o he_o have_v god_n wonder_n 28._o for_o he_o be_v go_v through_o death_n and_o have_v bring_v his_o body_n through_o death_n where_o then_o the_o turba_n desire_v to_o consume_v it_o and_o the_o devil_n contend_v about_o it_o and_o will_v have_v the_o turba_n in_o moses_n because_o he_o have_v be_v a_o angry_a man_n and_o bring_v the_o turba_n on_o many_o 29._o but_o it_o be_v say_v to_o the_o devil_n that_o the_o turba_n in_o the_o fire_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o he_o for_o it_o serve_v to_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n and_o have_v the_o wonder_n to_o he_o belong_v the_o turba_n in_o the_o darkness_n in_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n and_o be_v without_o the_o city_n it_o shall_v not_o dwell_v in_o the_o city_n in_o the_o principle_n but_o without_o it_o 30._o for_o god_n have_v not_o create_v he_o in_o and_o for_o the_o fire_n he_o may_v continue_v in_o his_o own_o awaken_v fire-life_n for_o he_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o moses_n body_n for_o moses_n wonder_n in_o the_o anger_n belong_v not_o to_o his_o turba_n he_o be_v a_o outcast_n a_o castaway_n 31._o and_o moses_n body_n be_v go_v through_o death_n his_o unfadable_a body_n which_o have_v the_o wonder_n have_v swallow_v up_o the_o earthly_a in_o the_o turba_n and_o yet_o not_o in_o a_o fadable_a manner_n consume_v it_o but_o he_o be_v also_o in_o the_o mystery_n and_o his_o turba_n which_o kill_v the_o first_o bear_v in_o egypt_n and_o drown_v pharaoh_n in_o the_o water_n and_o slay_v the_o worshipper_n of_o the_o calf_n also_o swallow_v up_o corah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n with_o the_o earth_n that_o remain_v in_o death_n 32._o when_o he_o die_v then_o go_v his_o spirit_n and_o soul_n forth_o out_o of_o the_o turba_n and_o he_o remain_v in_o the_o wonder_n in_o the_o mystery_n 33._o and_o now_o he_o be_v become_v a_o lamb_n and_o bring_v his_o work_n into_o isaac_n and_o sems_n good_n as_o a_o mystery_n of_o god_n in_o his_o deed_n of_o wonder_n but_o the_o house_n be_v isaac_n and_o they_o all_o dwell_v in_o sem_n tent_n in_o his_o kingdom_n consider_v that_o you_o jew_n and_o christian_n 34._o now_o see_v moses_n be_v go_v from_o the_o contention_n of_o the_o turba_n and_o of_o the_o devil_n with_o righteousness_n into_o the_o mystery_n and_o have_v likewise_o his_o first_o body_n yet_o unfadable_o on_o he_o bring_v out_o from_o the_o turba_n but_o yet_o it_o shall_v be_v try_v in_o the_o fire_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o day_n therefore_o his_o prophet_n be_v in_o the_o mystery_n 35._o and_o see_v he_o be_v become_v a_o lamb_n after_o the_o turba_n therefore_o he_o have_v send_v his_o people_n many_o prophet_n to_o preach_v of_o the_o mystery_n as_o in_o the_o mystery_n there_o be_v not_o only_o the_o law_n and_o work_n but_o also_o the_o lamb_n christ_n into_o which_o he_o also_o enter_v and_o make_v his_o law_n to_o be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o the_o lamb_n so_o that_o his_o wonder_n dwell_v in_o the_o lodging_n of_o the_o lamb._n 36._o this_o moses_n call_v to_o enoch_n see_v he_o also_o be_v in_o the_o mystery_n &_o have_v the_o white_a garment_n on_o which_o he_o get_v from_o the_o lamb_n in_o the_o other_o world_n to_o who_o help_n moses_n come_v with_o the_o lamb_n deed_n of_o wonder_n see_v they_o call_v noah_n fool_n who_o without_o wonder_n teach_v as_o a_o honest_a or_o virtuous_a man._n 37._o this_o will_v not_o babel_n endure_v for_o so_o her_o pomp_n and_o loftiness_n will_v be_v take_v away_o she_o set_v herself_o against_o moses_n and_o enoch_n and_o persecute_v they_o she_o will_v kill_v they_o but_o moses_n be_v dead_a already_o and_o enoch_n be_v take_v up_o and_o none_o in_o the_o outward_a life_n be_v with_o they_o they_o say_v well_o where_o be_v enoch_n and_o moses_n let_v we_o see_v their_o wonder_n and_o they_o be_v blind_a and_o can_v see_v they_o thus_o they_o rage_n against_o moses_n and_o enoch_n and_o go_v forth_o to_o battle_n 38._o then_o moses_n call_v to_o elias_n which_o go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n in_o the_o fire_n of_o god_n in_o the_o abyss_n of_o the_o principle_n with_o body_n and_o soul_n he_o dwell_v in_o the_o principle_n with_o strong_a may_v and_o when_o he_o come_v and_o see_v the_o cry_n that_o babel_n stand_v in_o the_o fire_n than_o he_o kindle_v the_o turba_n wherein_o the_o great_a fire_n burn_v which_o consume_v flesh_n and_o blood_n also_o stone_n and_o the_o element_n and_o then_o shall_v babel_n drink_v her_o last_o draught_n 39_o and_o after_o that_o enoch_n have_v peace_n a_o little_a time_n and_o it_o be_v the_o golden_a year_n till_o my_o belove_a become_v fat_a and_o wanton_a and_o stuff_v his_o turba_n well_o so_o that_o it_o seek_v the_o limit_v and_o then_o come_v the_o end_n of_o all_o time_n 40._o let_v it_o not_o be_v a_o wonder_n to_o you_o we_o will_v stay_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n with_o noah_n till_o moses_n and_o elias_n come_v and_o than_o you_o will_v find_v it_o by_o experience_n all_o you_o that_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n 41._o but_o to_o the_o wicked_a it_o remain_v hide_v till_o the_o turba_n devour_v they_o they_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o the_o jew_n do_v upon_o christ_n and_o the_o first_o world_n upon_o
eternity_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v which_o stand_v in_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o holy_a number_n three_o and_o also_o in_o the_o body_n of_o mary_n equal_o alike_o at_o once_o 21._o and_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n belong_v half_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o this_o world_n and_o half_a to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n make_v use_v of_o the_o outward_a spirit_n air_n of_o the_o star_n or_o constellation_n with_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o element_n and_o also_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o divine_a food_n for_o such_o a_o man_n be_v adam_n in_o innocency_n 22._o thus_o have_v god_n in_o christ_n regenerate_v we_o anew_o and_o thus_o be_v we_o bear_v anew_o in_o christ_n out_o of_o god_n word_n and_o spirit_n through_o the_o water_n of_o the_o eternal_a life_n &_o thus_o be_v we_o god_n child_n in_o christ_n and_o if_o we_o give_v ourselves_o up_o into_o christ_n out_o from_o our_o blood_n reason_n than_o we_o be_v endue_v with_o christ_n body_n and_o our_o will_n and_o spirit_n live_v from_o or_o of_o christ_n in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o 23._o thus_o you_o may_v understand_v what_o christ_n temptation_n be_v viz._n that_o the_o new_a regenerate_v man_n shall_v now_o hold_v out_o or_o endure_v adam_n temptation_n to_o try_v whether_o his_o soul_n can_v stand_v in_o god_n and_o there_o he_o be_v try_v in_o the_o turba_n to_o see_v whether_o he_o can_v right_o stand_v in_o the_o three_o principle_n and_o rule_v over_o the_o outward_a and_o therefore_o his_o food_n of_o the_o outward_a life_n be_v withdraw_v from_o he_o that_o the_o inward_a life_n may_v overpower_v the_o outward_a and_o eat_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o hold_v the_o outward_a in_o its_o own_o power_n and_o full_a omnipotency_n and_o also_o hold_v death_n captive_a that_o it_o shall_v not_o destroy_v the_o outward_a life_n this_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o great_a combat_n 24._o and_o then_o the_o other_o two_o temptation_n be_v these_o he_o be_v try_v whether_o man_n will_v live_v in_o full_a obedience_n to_o god_n and_o let_v god_n work_v in_o he_o or_o whether_o he_o will_v lift_v up_o himself_o again_o and_o free_v himself_o from_o god_n as_o lucifer_n do_v and_o therefore_o the_o devil_n must_v tempt_v he_o see_v this_o man_n be_v to_o possess_v his_o kingly_a or_o royal_a throne_n 25._o therefore_o the_o devil_n complain_v that_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o stand_v the_o mother_n of_o the_o fierce_a wrathfulness_n draw_v he_o so_o hard_o therefore_o it_o be_v now_o permit_v to_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v tempt_v and_o try_v it_o in_o this_o man_n and_o shall_v set_v before_o he_o that_o which_o be_v set_v before_o himself_o and_o if_o this_o man_n do_v overcome_v he_o shall_v be_v the_o devil_n judge_n who_o be_v find_v to_o be_v a_o lyar._n 26._o for_o he_o tempt_v he_o in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o assault_v full_o to_o try_v whether_o he_o will_v fly_v in_o his_o own_o self_n may_v and_o he_o himself_o have_v do_v and_o have_v awaken_v the_o anger_n or_o whether_o he_o will_v put_v his_o trust_n alone_o in_o god_n and_o live_v in_o god_n with_o will_n and_o substance_n or_o deed_n as_o a_o child_n in_o obedience_n to_o the_o father_n and_o this_o he_o try_v so_o long_o with_o he_o as_o adam_n be_v in_o the_o temptation_n before_o his_o sleep_n 27._o thus_o must_v we_o also_o continual_o be_v tempt_v but_o in_o christ_n who_o have_v overcome_v we_o can_v have_v the_o victory_n for_o his_o soul_n be_v our_o soul_n and_o his_o flesh_n our_o flesh_n if_o we_o trust_v in_o he_o and_o give_v up_o ourselves_o whole_o to_o he_o as_o christ_n give_v himself_o up_o to_o his_o father_n 28._o and_o thus_o belove_a friend_n you_o understand_v what_o christ_n soul_n and_o body_n be_v viz._n our_o soul_n and_o body_n if_o we_o cleave_v to_o god_n but_o if_o not_o than_o we_o be_v rend_v off_o and_o be_v according_a to_o the_o outward_a life_n fall_v home_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o this_o world_n viz._n to_o the_o perish_a corrupt_a adam_n and_o according_a to_o the_o soul_n fall_v home_o to_o the_o devil_n in_o the_o anger_n of_o god_n seek_v this_o more_o at_o large_a in_o our_o other_o write_n where_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o whole_a ground_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o this_o world_n the_o seven_o and_o thirty_o question_n what_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v which_o be_v obedient_a and_o which_o he_o commend_v into_o his_o father_n hand_n 1._o this_o be_v that_o great_a jewel_n for_o which_o we_o high_o rejoice_v that_o we_o know_v it_o so_o that_o we_o know_v ourselves_o what_o we_o be_v and_o it_o be_v more_o dear_a and_o acceptable_a to_o we_o then_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o it_o be_v that_o pearl_n 46._o for_o which_o one_o sell_v all_o his_o good_n and_o buy_v that_o pearl_n of_o which_o christ_n speak_v 2._o for_o it_o be_v more_o profitable_a to_o man_n then_o the_o whole_a world_n it_o be_v more_o noble_a and_o precious_a than_o the_o sun_n for_o the_o noble_a or_o precious_a stone_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n the_o philosopher_n stone_n lie_v therein_o it_o have_v the_o mysterium_fw-la magnum_fw-la the_o great_a mystery_n heavenly_a and_o earthly_a and_o there_o be_v nothing_o like_o it_o in_o this_o world_n but_o only_o the_o mean_a simplicity_n which_o stand_v still_o and_o generate_v or_o awaken_v no_o turba_n this_o have_v the_o jewel_n hide_v in_o it_o as_o the_o gold_n lie_v in_o the_o stone_n 3._o and_o continue_v unconsume_v if_o a_o robber_n with_o the_o earthly_a turba_n come_v not_o upon_o it_o and_o destroy_v it_o and_o yet_o attain_v it_o not_o so_o be_v also_o the_o own_o self-reason_n in_o the_o mystery_n 4._o therefore_o we_o dare_v and_o can_v with_o good_a ground_n say_v that_o a_o simple_a layick_a which_o in_o simplicity_n without_o much_o skill_n and_o art_n cleave_v to_o god_n have_v the_o mysterium_fw-la magnum_fw-la better_a and_o sure_a also_o undestroy_v than_o a_o high_a learned_a doctor_n that_o fly_v aloft_o in_o his_o reason_n and_o destroy_v the_o jewel_n and_o set_v it_o in_o babel_n this_o indeed_o will_v not_o relish_v well_o but_o we_o be_v not_o much_o concern_v in_o that_o we_o shall_v set_v forth_o the_o truth_n and_o balk_v or_o shun_v none_o 5._o now_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o christ_n spirit_n than_o reason_n understand_v the_o soul_n or_o indeed_o the_o outward_a life_n spirit_n which_o stand_v in_o power_n and_o virtue_n and_o wink_n of_o the_o star_n and_o element_n but_o no_o it_o be_v another_o thing_n wherein_o the_o image_n of_o god_n stand_v the_o outward_a spirit_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o deity_n but_o to_o the_o wonder_n 6._o we_o have_v true_o and_o clear_o mention_v before_o but_o since_o it_o be_v hint_v express_o in_o the_o question_n that_o christ_n commend_v it_o to_o his_o father_n in_o his_o die_v therefore_o we_o must_v speak_v thereof_o how_o it_o be_v 7._o you_o have_v sufficient_o conceive_v before_o in_o what_o manner_n the_o soul_n be_v the_o centre_n of_o nature_n the_o original_a of_o life_n and_o the_o mobility_n as_o viz._n a_o fire_n of_o god_n which_o shall_v be_v turn_v and_o incline_v into_o god_n eternal_a will_n wherein_o it_o be_v original_o generate_v out_o of_o the_o magic_n seek_v and_o out_o of_o the_o eternal_a nothing_o be_v become_v a_o great_a mystery_n wherein_o all_o thing_n lie_v the_o deity_n with_o all_o the_o three_o principle_n and_o all_o whatsoever_o be_v or_o be_v call_v be_v or_o substance_n or_o thing_n 8._o also_o it_o be_v explain_v how_o out_o of_o the_o fire_n the_o light_n be_v generate_v and_o the_o spirit-air_n and_o then_o how_o the_o fire_n draw_v the_o spirit-air_n again_o into_o itself_o and_o so_o continual_o blow_v up_o itself_o again_o and_o so_o with_o the_o light_n and_o the_o air_n and_o the_o source_n or_o quality_n of_o the_o fire_n be_v the_o life_n of_o its_o own_o self_n 9_o we_o have_v also_o mention_v moreover_o unto_o you_o concern_v the_o noble_a or_o precious_a tincture_n which_o thus_o arise_v in_o the_o light_n in_o which_o be_v the_o light_n be_v meekness_n which_o be_v generate_v out_o of_o the_o anguish_n as_o a_o 5._o mortification_n or_o kill_v and_o sprout_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o mortification_n as_o another_o life_n of_o another_o source_n or_o quality_n where_o the_o fires-source_n or_o quality_n be_v apprehend_v to_o be_v a_o tincture_n like_o a_o drive_v forth_o of_o a_o spirit_n and_o yet_o also_o be_v desirous_a and_o so_o draw_v the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o light_n into_o itself_o and_o make_v it_o be_v a_o substance_n viz._n water_n 10._o wherein_o the_o two_o form_n become_v apprehend_v one_o according_a to_o
the_o fire-source_n or_o quality_n viz._n red_a and_o therein_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n viz._n sulphur_n and_o the_o other_o as_o a_o thin_a meekness_n and_o yet_o substantiality_n viz._n water_n which_o the_o desirous_a tincture_n draw_v and_o turn_v into_o one_o in_o a_o thing_n so_o that_o it_o become_v blood_n 11._o now_o in_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o original_a of_o the_o fire_n viz._n the_o warmth_n that_o be_v a_o tincture_n a_o life_n and_o in_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o tincture_n go_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o thin_a water_n of_o life_n the_o power_n and_o virtue_n out_o of_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n and_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n receive_v that_o go_v forth_o or_o exit_z continual_o again_o and_o that_o go_v forth_o be_v free_a from_o the_o fire_n and_o also_o from_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n for_o it_o be_v go_v forth_o and_o yet_o be_v generate_v out_o of_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n 12._o and_o this_o be_v now_o the_o right_n and_o true_a spirit_n that_o become_v generate_v out_o of_o the_o soul_n wherein_o the_o image_n of_o god_n with_o the_o divine_a virgin_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n stand_v for_o in_o the_o spirit_n lie_v all_o wit_n or_o ingenuity_n wisdom_n and_o understanding_n it_o have_v the_o thought_n and_o the_o noble_a or_o precious_a life_n which_o unit_v itself_o with_o god_n and_o be_v so_o subtle_a that_o this_o spirit_n can_n and_o may_v enter_v into_o god_n 13._o and_o then_o if_o this_o spirit_n do_v give_v itself_o up_o into_o god_n and_o cast_v away_o its_o soul_n fire-pomp_n and_o wit_n than_o it_o attain_v god_n image_n and_o god_n body_n for_o it_o go_v with_o the_o will_n into_o god_n and_o dwell_v with_o power_n and_o authority_n in_o god_n thus_o it_o have_v god_n substance_n on_o it_o or_o in_o it_o and_o be_v without_o this_o world_n in_o the_o life_n of_o god_n 14._o but_o be_v this_o spirit_n out_o of_o the_o centre_n of_o nature_n first_o originate_v out_o of_o the_o fire-life_n though_o it_o be_v not_o the_o fire-life_n but_o its_o spirit_n and_o the_o fire-life_n with_o the_o original_a in_o the_o abyss_n stand_v in_o the_o quality_n or_o source_n of_o the_o anger_n of_o god_n therefore_o have_v christ_n not_o commend_v this_o his_o spirit_n to_o the_o fiery-life_n but_o to_o his_o father_n into_o his_o hand_n 15._o his_o hand_n be_v the_o love_n desire_v wherewith_o he_o reach_v after_o our_o spirit_n when_o we_o enter_v into_o he_o and_o commit_v or_o commend_v ourselves_o to_o he_o note_n 16._o for_o now_o when_o his_o body_n be_v to_o die_v on_o the_o cross_n hell_n and_o his_o soul_n be_v to_o go_v through_o hell_n god_n anger_n then_o the_o devil_n wait_v and_o think_v we_o will_v sure_o keep_v he_o well_o enough_o in_o our_o turba_n in_o the_o fire_n therefore_o christ_n commend_v his_o spirit_n into_o god_n be_v love_n 17._o and_o thus_o come_v now_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o spirit_n into_o god_n hand_n comprise_v in_o the_o anger-fire_n in_o death_n there_o death_n will_v have_v hold_v he_o but_o it_o be_v break_v and_o make_v a_o scorn_n of_o 18._o for_o it_o slay_v the_o outward_a man_n viz._n the_o outward_a life_n and_o take_v it_o away_o and_o thought_n now_o must_v the_o soul_n need_v stay_v in_o the_o turba_n but_o there_o be_v a_o strong_a in_o the_o soul_n viz._n god_n word_n that_o take_v death_n captive_a and_o destroy_v the_o anger_n and_o quench_v the_o fierce_a wrath_n with_o the_o love_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n 19_o that_o be_v a_o poison_n to_o hell_n that_o the_o love_n of_o god_n come_v into_o it_o and_o slay_v it_o in_o the_o soul_n and_o be_v 14._o to_o death_n a_o pestilence_n and_o a_o die_v a_o break_v and_o destroy_v it_o must_v now_o suffer_v that_o a_o eternal_a life_n grow_v up_o in_o it_o 20._o thus_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n take_v the_o devil_n captive_a and_o bring_v he_o out_o of_o this_o souls-fire_n forth_o into_o the_o darkness_n and_o thrust_v he_o into_o darkness_n out_o from_o the_o soul_n fire_n &_o out_o from_o god_n fire_n into_o the_o fierce_a wrathful_a harsh_a austereness_n and_o bitterness_n in_o the_o cold_a there_o he_o may_v heat_v himself_o lest_o he_o freeze_v for_o cold._n 21._o consider_v the_o first_o four_o form_n of_o nature_n and_o then_o you_o may_v be_v inform_v what_o the_o devil_n dwell_v house_n be_v for_o before_o christ_n he_o hold_v the_o soul_n captive_a in_o the_o turba_n with_o the_o fire_n and_o though_o clear_o he_o do_v not_o hold_v the_o soul_n spirit_n yet_o he_o have_v the_o root_n in_o the_o turba_n but_o there_o the_o forbearance_n be_v command_v he_o and_o he_o be_v thrust_v out_o and_o bring_v into_o the_o darkness_n and_o his_o malice_n and_o wickedness_n be_v thus_o destroy_v by_o christ_n go_v into_o hell_n and_o christ_n become_v his_o judge_n 22._o thus_o you_o have_v in_o brief_a describe_v what_o christ_n and_o our_o spirit_n be_v viz._n not_o the_o outward_a life_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o soul_n not_o the_o soul_n itself_o but_o its_o lifes-spirit_n 23._o as_o there_o be_v in_o god_n the_o holy_a number_n three_o a_o distinction_n of_o three_o person_n in_o one_o substance_n and_o yet_o but_o one_o god_n where_o the_o son_n have_v the_o spirit_n viz._n the_o life_n proceed_v out_o of_o his_o heart_n and_o mouth_n and_o the_o heart_n be_v the_o flame_n of_o love_n and_o the_o father_n the_o source_n or_o quality_n of_o anger_n and_o be_v meekn_v and_o allay_v by_o his_o son_n in_o the_o love_n so_o that_o all_z in_o god_n be_v one_o will_v and_o substance_n or_o deed._n 24._o so_o it_o be_v also_o in_o man_n and_o no_o otherwise_o in_o one_o syllable_n whatsoever_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v that_o be_v we_o also_o in_o christ_n in_o god_n his_o true_a child_n and_o therefore_o shall_v we_o also_o commend_v our_o spirit_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o so_o we_o may_v also_o enter_v through_o death_n into_o life_n with_o christ_n in_o god_n 25._o be_v not_o lead_v astray_o and_o delude_v by_o the_o facetious_a pleasant_a specious_a show_n as_o man_n hither_o to_o have_v be_v in_o babel_n where_o they_o have_v conceit_v this_o and_o that_o concern_v the_o soul_n and_o its_o spirit_n one_o thus_o another_o otherwise_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n but_o conceit_n and_o opinion_n 26._o the_o understanding_n be_v generate_v in_o god_n not_o in_o the_o school_n or_o university_n from_o art_n though_o we_o despise_v not_o art_n for_o if_o it_o be_v generate_v in_o god_n it_o be_v a_o tenfold_n mystery_n for_o it_o attain_v always_o the_o ten_o number_n in_o wit_n or_o understanding_n more_o than_o the_o layick_a for_o it_o can_v of_o many_o number_n make_v one_o 27._o but_o it_o stand_v not_o in_o own_o self_n ability_n no_o the_o entrance_n upon_o the_o cross_n must_v be_v in_o one_o as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o other_o be_v he_o doctor_n or_o layick_a in_o god_n mystery_n there_o be_v none_o doctor_n but_o only_a scholar_n yet_o a_o learned_a scholar_n can_v go_v far_o 28._o have_v this_o hand_n the_o high_a art_n and_o also_o this_o high_a gift_n you_o shall_v well_o see_v it_o but_o god_n will_v have_v it_o as_o it_o be_v it_o please_v he_o well_o that_o he_o may_v 20._o turn_v the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o world_n into_o foolishness_n and_o he_o give_v his_o power_n to_o the_o weak_a that_o every_o life_n may_v bow_v before_o he_o and_o acknowledge_v he_o that_o he_o be_v lord_n and_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_n the_o eight_o and_o thirty_o question_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v do_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o my_o belove_a friend_n here_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o answer_v your_o question_n also_o it_o stand_v not_o in_o our_o ability_n neither_o aught_o any_o to_o ask_v for_o it_o be_v the_o secret_a counsel_n of_o god_n and_o none_o shall_v esteem_v himself_o as_o god_n and_o know_v all_z before_o hand_n 2._o our_o knowledge_n stand_v in_o god_n spirit_n and_o will_n when_o that_o move_v then_o go_v you_o on_o in_o the_o heavenly_a magia_n and_o pass_v into_o the_o wonder_n of_o the_o earthly_a now_o be_v the_o prophet_n bear_v for_o he_o stand_v upon_o the_o crown_n and_o speak_v magical_o concern_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o wonder_n and_o of_o its_o turba_n and_o how_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o a_o end_n and_o break_v again_o and_o come_v into_o the_o first_o 3._o for_o all_o prophet_n speak_v out_o of_o the_o turba_n they_o declare_v what_o be_v false_a or_o wicked_a and_o show_v that_o which_o be_v better_o which_o go_v in_o god_n will._n 4._o therefore_o do_v not_o burden_n we_o with_o this_o question_n for_o we_o shall_v be_v captivate_v by_o the_o turba_n
time_n of_o earnest_a severity_n look_v not_o upon_o it_o with_o earthly_a eye_n it_o concern_v thou_o near_o thou_o will_v well_o see_v in_o thy_o death_n what_o kind_n of_o judgement_n it_o be_v in_o what_o time_n and_o under_o what_o turba_n thou_o have_v live_v this_o we_o speak_v most_o earnest_o as_o we_o ought_v the_o thirteen_o question_n how_o the_o soul_n feed_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v 1._o when_o the_o soul_n enter_v into_o the_o majestic_a light_n as_o above_o mention_v and_o receive_v the_o light_n of_o god_n then_o be_v it_o altogether_o long_v and_o 1._o pant_v after_o it_o and_o continual_o draw_v into_o its_o desire_n god_n power_n and_o virtue_n that_o be_v god_n body_n into_o itself_o and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o god_n spirit_n thus_o it_o acquire_v god_n body_n and_o spirit_n and_o eat_v at_o god_n table_n all_o whatsoever_o the_o father_n have_v be_v his_o son_n and_o whatsoever_o the_o son_n have_v be_v his_o image_n 2._o it_o eat_v god_n flesh_n christ_n flesh_n and_o from_o that_o eat_n god_n body_n grow_v in_o it_o so_o that_o it_o also_o have_v god_n body_n and_o be_v god_n child_n not_o only_o his_o similitude_n but_o child_n it_o be_v bear_v in_o god_n out_o of_o god_n essence_n and_o live_v in_o god_n 3._o when_o it_o hear_v in_o this_o world_n god_n word_n teach_v or_o speak_v from_o or_o by_o god_n child_n than_o it_o lay_v hold_v of_o the_o same_o and_o eat_v it_o 4._o the_o outward_a man_n eat_v earthly_a bread_n and_o the_o soul_n eat_v god_n bread_n concern_v which_o christ_n say_v 27._o he_o will_v give_v we_o his_o body_n for_o food_n 5._o and_o his_o testament_n be_v nothing_o else_o we_o eat_v not_o spirit_n without_o body_n for_o the_o soul_n be_v spirit_n beforehand_o it_o will_v have_v a_o body_n and_o thus_o it_o get_v body_n and_o spirit_n together_o 6._o let_v this_o be_v tell_v thou_o o_o babel_n and_o consider_v how_o thou_o manage_a christ_n testament_n what_o thou_o teach_v when_o thou_o say_v christ_n testament_n be_v spirit_n without_o body_n thou_o deny_v god_n thou_o deny_v god_n substantiality_n christ_n heavenly_a body_n which_o be_v great_a than_o all_o which_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o in_o its_o own_o principle_n 7._o thou_o earthly_a mouth_n shall_v not_o chew_v it_o with_o thy_o tooth_n the_o soul_n have_v another_o mouth_n and_o receive_v it_o under_o the_o outward_a element_n the_o outward_a receive_v the_o outward_a and_o the_o inward_a receive_v the_o inward_a 8._o christ_n last_o supper_n with_o his_o disciple_n be_v even_o so_o the_o outward_a be_v a_o remembrance_n the_o inward_a be_v the_o substance_n for_o 17._o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n consist_v or_o stand_v in_o power_n and_o virtue_n it_o be_v magical_a not_o as_o a_o thought_n but_o essential_a substantial_a 9_o the_o magia_n make_v substance_n for_o in_o the_o eternal_a nothing_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o magia_n make_v somewhat_o where_o nothing_o be_v 10._o there_o be_v not_o only_o and_o bare_o spirit_n in_o god_n but_o nature_n substance_n flesh_n and_o blood_n tincture_n and_o all_o this_o world_n external_o be_v a_o similitude_n of_o the_o inward_a world_n 11._o we_o tell_v you_o we_o speak_v what_o we_o see_v feel_v taste_n and_o know_v and_o it_o be_v not_o fiction_n and_o conceit_n and_o that_o not_o for_o our_o own_o sake_n but_o for_o you_o as_o one_o member_n be_v bind_v in_o duty_n to_o another_o that_o our_o joy_n may_v be_v in_o you_o and_o that_o we_o may_v partake_v with_o you_o as_o brethren_n in_o one_o substance_n he_o that_o desire_v to_o know_v more_o in_o this_o let_v he_o read_v our_o life_n three_o part_n or_o book_n where_o he_o shall_v find_v the_o circumstance_n concern_v the_o soul_n eat_v and_o of_o christ_n testament_n the_o fourteen_o question_n whether_o such_o new_a soul_n be_v without_o sin_n 1._o we_o understand_v here_o the_o propagate_v soul_n in_o a_o child_n new_o bear_v my_o belove_a friend_n this_o be_v a_o very_a acute_a question_n but_o to_o you_o my_o belove_a friend_n it_o shall_v be_v answer_v that_o the_o time_n of_o the_o open_n be_v bear_v or_o generate_v the_o day_n daw_v or_o break_v the_o night_n be_v pass_v away_o praise_n and_o 12._o thanks_o be_v give_v to_o god_n for_o it_o that_o have_v generate_v we_o again_o to_o the_o light_n to_o a_o uncorruptible_a or_o unfadable_a inheritance_n and_o have_v receive_v we_o for_o his_o belove_a child_n 2._o you_o my_o belove_a friend_n know_v well_o the_o heavy_a fall_n of_o adam_n as_o we_o have_v exact_o set_v it_o down_o in_o all_o our_o write_n viz._n that_o the_o soul_n with_o its_o right_a eye_n have_v turn_v itself_o away_o from_o god_n into_o the_o spirit_n of_o this_o world_n and_o be_v become_v disobedient_a to_o god_n and_o have_v destroy_v its_o noble_a and_o precious_a image_n and_o have_v introduce_v a_o monstrous_a image_n and_o let_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o this_o world_n whereas_o it_o shall_v with_o its_o will_n have_v strong_o rule_v over_o it_o and_o not_o at_o all_o with_o the_o soul_n have_v eat_v evil_a and_o good_n 3._o but_o now_o it_o have_v do_v against_o god_n command_n and_o put_v its_o imagination_n into_o the_o earthly_a spirit_n where_o sudden_o the_o turba_n captivate_v it_o which_o have_v introduce_v the_o earthly_a monster_n into_o the_o noble_a image_n and_o thus_o the_o turba_n sudden_o seek_v and_o find_v the_o limit_v in_o which_o the_o image_n become_v break_v and_o if_o the_o word_n have_v not_o instant_o set_v itself_o in_o the_o middle_n it_o have_v eternal_o remain_v break_v 4._o and_o now_o also_o the_o turba_n be_v become_v seat_v in_o the_o earthly_a abyss_n and_o have_v captivate_v both_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o bring_v the_o body_n continual_o to_o the_o limit_v where_o then_o it_o break_v it_o and_o cast_v it_o away_o and_o then_o the_o poor_a soul_n remain_v raw_a and_o naked_a without_o a_o body_n 5._o therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o it_o convert_v and_o turn_v with_o its_o right_a eye_n into_o the_o word_n again_o and_o acquire_v again_o a_o body_n generate_v or_o bear_v of_o god_n else_o it_o be_v raw_a or_o naked_a and_o have_v the_o turba_n in_o it_o which_o the_o fire_n awaken_v in_o its_o great_a anguish_n for_o it_o be_v a_o vehement_a hunger_n a_o seeker_n and_o a_o finder_n 6._o thus_o it_o be_v now_o very_o apprehensible_a to_o we_o that_o we_o be_v tie_v and_o bind_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o this_o world_n with_o the_o soul_n for_o the_o turba_n hold_v we_o captive_a in_o the_o fierce_a wrathful_a anger_n of_o god_n 7._o and_o though_o our_o soul_n do_v go_v forth_o and_o become_v generate_v in_o god_n yet_o it_o have_v the_o turba_n belong_v to_o the_o outward_a body_n which_o consume_v it_o for_o it_o search_v through_o it_o even_o into_o the_o abyss_n and_o there_o it_o find_v that_o it_o be_v only_o a_o looking-glass_n of_o the_o eternal_a and_o then_o it_o go_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o looking-glass_n into_o the_o eternal_a and_o let_v the_o looking-glass_n lie_v in_o the_o nothing_o 8._o thus_o you_o know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o soul_n with_o the_o body_n in_o the_o seed_n be_v half_o earthly_a for_o it_o be_v sulphur_n that_o be_v phur_n and_o sul_z one_o among_o another_o and_o the_o turba_n be_v therein_o which_o have_v indeed_o might_n and_o power_n enough_o to_o break_v or_o destroy_v the_o seed_n 9_o how_o then_o can_v a_o pure_a clean_a soul_n be_v generate_v it_o can_v be_v it_o bring_v the_o turba_n along_o with_o it_o into_o the_o world_n and_o be_v sinful_a in_o the_o mother_n womb._n 10._o but_o know_v that_o god_n be_v become_v man_n or_o incarnate_a and_o have_v put_v the_o word_n fiat_n again_o into_o the_o seed_n though_o now_o the_o turba_n be_v also_o in_o the_o earthly_a part_n so_o that_o the_o seed_n be_v not_o altogether_o free_a 11._o yet_o it_o be_v in_o this_o manner_n with_o the_o soul_n so_o far_o as_o the_o father_n and_o mother_n be_v honest_a and_o virtuous_a and_o in_o god_n that_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o leave_v or_o forsake_v of_o god_n for_o it_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o father_n and_o mother_n soul_n and_o though_o a_o child_n die_v in_o the_o mother_n womb_n as_o it_o be_v without_o baptism_n yet_o it_o be_v baptize_v with_o the_o father_n &_o mother_n spirit_n viz._n with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o dwell_v in_o they_o and_o the_o turba_n will_v be_v break_v off_o in_o death_n for_o the_o faith_n part_n press_v into_o god_n 12._o but_o with_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a parent_n it_o be_v in_o another_o manner_n the_o soul_n if_o the_o child_n die_v in_o the_o mother_n womb_n fall_v home_o to_o
the_o turba_n and_o in_o eternity_n reach_v not_o to_o god_n also_o it_o know_v nothing_o of_o he_o but_o be_v a_o life_n according_a to_o the_o essence_n &_o property_n of_o the_o parent_n 13._o where_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o reach_v to_o the_o kindle_v or_o burn_v for_o the_o soul_n have_v not_o itself_o act_v or_o commit_v sin_n but_o be_v a_o fountain-quality-spirit_n without_o self-desire_n and_o wonder_n like_o the_o flame_n of_o brimstone_n and_o like_o a_o ignis_fw-la fatuus_fw-la which_o can_v reach_v to_o god_n but_o remain_v so_o between_o heaven_n and_o hell_n in_o the_o mystery_n till_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n which_o will_v gather_v in_o its_o harvest_n and_o give_v every_o thing_n its_o right_a and_o true_a place_n of_o repository_n 14._o though_o perhaps_o our_o learned_a master_n in_o this_o may_v have_v another_o kind_n of_o philosophy_n but_o we_o inquire_v not_o after_o their_o art_n we_o have_v eye_n they_o have_v art_n we_o speak_v what_o we_o see_v 15._o thus_o we_o give_v you_o to_o understand_v that_o no_o soul_n be_v generate_v or_o bear_v into_o this_o world_n without_o sin_n how_o honest_a virtuous_a and_o godly_a soever_o the_o parent_n be_v for_o it_o be_v conceive_v and_o breed_v forth_o or_o hatch_v in_o earthly_a seed_n and_o bring_v the_o turba_n of_o the_o body_n along_o with_o it_o and_o that_o have_v also_o surround_v the_o soul_n 16._o therefore_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n god_n make_v a_o covenant_n with_o the_o child_n in_o circumcision_n and_o so_o gethan_fw-ge order_v in_o the_o covenant_n that_o they_o must_v shed_v their_o blood_n and_o drown_v the_o turba_n of_o the_o the_o soul_n therewith_o 17._o and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o be_v the_o baptism_n wherein_o the_o holy_a spirit_n with_o the_o water_n of_o life_n wash_v off_o the_o turba_n of_o the_o soul_n water_n that_o it_o may_v come_v to_o god_n and_o become_v god_n child_n 18._o but_o if_o any_o will_v say_v that_o every_o one_o that_o have_v not_o baptism_n as_o jew_n and_o turk_n and_o other_o people_n with_o who_o be_v not_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o who_o have_v not_o the_o candlestick_n among_o they_o that_o they_o be_v all_o reject_v of_o god_n although_o they_o never_o so_o vehement_o press_v with_o their_o teach_n life_n and_o death_n into_o the_o love_n of_o god_n that_o be_v a_o fancy_n and_o babel-like_a speak_v without_o knowledge_n 19_o blessedness_n and_o salvation_n lie_v not_o alone_o in_o the_o outward_a word_n but_o in_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n who_o will_v exclude_v those_o that_o enter_v into_o god_n 20._o be_v it_o not_o babel_n who_o seduce_v and_o confound_v the_o whole_a world_n so_o that_o they_o have_v divide_v people_n into_o opinion_n and_o yet_o in_o their_o will_n go_v but_o one_o way_n who_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o but_o the_o antichrist_n when_o he_o draw_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n into_o his_o might_n authority_n and_o power_n and_o make_v fiction_n concern_v the_o regeneration_n of_o which_o when_o it_o come_v to_o be_v day_n the_o very_a child_n will_v be_v ashamed_a of_o they_o 21._o a_o man_n may_v say_v with_o good_a ground_n that_o antichrist_n doctrine_n be_v a_o fight_v with_o a_o shadow_n as_o in_o a_o looking-glass_n and_o a_o falsehood_n and_o wickedness_n of_o the_o serpent_n which_o continual_o beguile_v eve_n 22._o thus_o it_o be_v apprehensible_a to_o we_o that_o no_o soul_n come_v into_o this_o world_n without_o sin_n every_o one_o bring_v the_o turba_n along_o with_o it_o for_o if_o it_o be_v without_o sin_n than_o it_o must_v dwell_v in_o a_o total_o pure_a body_n which_o have_v no_o evil_a will_n or_o inclination_n at_o all_o in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o earthly_a seek_v or_o desire_n 23._o but_o thus_o indeed_o be_v every_o body_n and_o soul_n tie_v and_o unite_v together_o till_o the_o turba_n find_v the_o limit_v of_o the_o body_n and_o then_o the_o turba_n seek_v the_o work_n or_o action_n of_o the_o body_n as_o have_v be_v mention_v above_o the_o fifteen_o question_n how_o sin_n come_v into_o the_o soul_n be_v it_o be_v god_n work_n and_o creature_n 1._o it_o be_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o be_v above_o mention_v the_o turba_n together_o with_o the_o earthly_a seek_n come_v along_o with_o it_o into_o this_o world_n and_o so_o the_o soul_n become_v vehement_o draw_v by_o two_o party_n first_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v pass_v into_o the_o middle_n which_o there_o of_o love_n be_v become_v man_n or_o incarnate_a that_o draw_v the_o soul_n continual_o into_o god_n kingdom_n and_o set_v the_o turba_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o soul_n so_o that_o the_o soul_n see_v in_o nature_n what_o be_v false_a or_o wicked_a and_o sin_n and_o if_o it_o suffer_v itself_o to_o be_v draw_v than_o it_o become_v regenerate_v in_o the_o word_n so_o that_o it_o be_v god_n image_n 2._o and_o second_o the_o turba_n also_o draw_v the_o soul_n mighty_o with_o its_o band_n and_o bring_v the_o soul_n continual_o back_o into_o the_o earthly_a seek_v or_o long_v especial_o in_o youth_n when_o the_o earthly_a tree_n stick_v full_a of_o green_a sprout_a drive_a essence_n and_o poison_n and_o then_o the_o turba_n thus_o fly_v strong_o or_o mighty_o in_o so_o that_o many_o a_o soul_n in_o eternity_n can_v become_v free_v and_o loose_v from_o it_o 3._o a_o thing_n which_o be_v from_o two_o beginning_n which_o stand_v in_o equal_a balance_n or_o weight_n do_v by_o put_v in_o more_o weight_n on_o the_o one_o part_n sink_v down_o be_v it_o either_o by_o evil_n or_o good_a 4._o sin_n make_v not_o itself_o but_o the_o will_n make_v it_o it_o come_v from_o the_o imagination_n into_o the_o spirit_n and_o then_o the_o spirit_n go_v into_o a_o thing_n and_o become_v infect_v from_o the_o thing_n and_o so_o the_o turba_n of_o that_o thing_n come_v into_o the_o spirit_n and_o destroy_v first_o the_o image_n of_o god_n 5._o and_o then_o it_o go_v further_o seek_v deep_a and_o so_o it_o find_v the_o abyss_n viz._n the_o soul_n and_o seek_v in_o the_o soul_n and_o so_o it_o find_v the_o fierce_a wrathful_a fire_n by_o which_o it_o mix_v itself_o with_o the_o thing_n introduce_v into_o the_o spirit_n and_o so_o now_o sin_n be_v total_o generate_v or_o bear_v and_o so_o now_o all_o be_v sin_n which_o desire_v to_o bring_v that_o which_o be_v outward_a into_o the_o will._n 6._o the_o will_n shall_v simple_o or_o single_o be_v incline_v and_o exercise_v in_o love_n &_o meekness_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o nothing_o or_o dead_a it_o shall_v only_o desire_v god_n life_n that_o god_n may_v work_v act_n or_o create_v in_o it_o and_o whatsoever_o it_o do_v beside_o its_o will_n shall_v be_v incline_v or_o intend_v so_o as_o to_o do_v it_o for_o god_n 7._o but_o if_o it_o put_v its_o will_n into_o the_o thing_n or_o substance_n than_o it_o bring_v that_o thing_n or_o substance_n into_o the_o spirit_n which_o possess_v its_o heart_n and_o so_o the_o turba_n become_v generate_v and_o the_o soul_n captivate_v with_o that_o thing_n 8._o thus_o we_o give_v you_o for_o a_o answer_n that_o no_o soul_n come_v pure_a and_o clean_a out_o of_o the_o mother_n body_n or_o womb_n be_v it_o beget_v by_o holy_a or_o unholy_a parent_n 9_o for_o as_o the_o abyss_n and_o anger_n of_o god_n as_o also_o the_o earthly_a world_n do_v all_o cleave_v to_o and_o depend_v on_o god_n the_o father_n and_o yet_o can_v apprehend_v or_o touch_v his_o heart_n and_o spirit_n so_o it_o be_v also_o with_o the_o child_n in_o the_o mother_n body_n or_o womb._n 10._o if_o it_o be_v beget_v of_o godly_a pious_a parent_n than_o each_o principle_n stand_v in_o its_o own_o part_n by_o itself_o when_o the_o turba_n take_v the_o earthly_a body_n than_o the_o heaven_n take_v the_o spirit_n and_o so_o the_o majesty_n fill_v the_o spirit_n and_o so_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o god_n and_o be_v free_a from_o pain_n 11._o but_o while_o the_o soul_n stick_v in_o the_o earthly_a life_n it_o be_v not_o free_a and_o it_o be_v because_o the_o earthly_a spirit_n continual_o bring_v its_o abomination_n with_o its_o imagination_n into_o it_o and_o the_o spirit_n must_v continual_o stand_v in_o strife_n against_o the_o earthly_a life_n the_o sixteen_o question_n how_o the_o soul_n both_o in_o the_o adamical_a body_n as_o also_o in_o the_o newborn_a or_o regenerate_v body_n be_v hold_v or_o preserve_v in_o such_o union_n together_o 1._o we_o have_v mention_v above_o that_o there_o be_v three_o principle_n which_o moreover_o be_v all_o three_o in_o the_o soul_n and_o stand_v in_o one_o another_o as_o one_o thing_n and_o we_o offer_v you_o this_o that_o the_o strife_n in_o the_o soul_n begin_v in_o the_o seed_n while_o they_o yet_o